Home | History | Annotate | Download | only in testdata
      1 Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose
      2 Menendez.
      3 
      4 
      5 
      6 
      7 
      8                    THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER
      9                                 BY
     10                             MARK TWAIN
     11                      (Samuel Langhorne Clemens)
     12 
     13 
     14 
     15 
     16                            P R E F A C E
     17 
     18 MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or
     19 two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were
     20 schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but
     21 not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of
     22 three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of
     23 architecture.
     24 
     25 The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children
     26 and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say,
     27 thirty or forty years ago.
     28 
     29 Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and
     30 girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account,
     31 for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what
     32 they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked,
     33 and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in.
     34 
     35                                                             THE AUTHOR.
     36 
     37 HARTFORD, 1876.
     38 
     39 
     40 
     41                           T O M   S A W Y E R
     42 
     43 
     44 
     45 CHAPTER I
     46 
     47 "TOM!"
     48 
     49 No answer.
     50 
     51 "TOM!"
     52 
     53 No answer.
     54 
     55 "What's gone with that boy,  I wonder? You TOM!"
     56 
     57 No answer.
     58 
     59 The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the
     60 room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or
     61 never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her
     62 state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not
     63 service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well.
     64 She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but
     65 still loud enough for the furniture to hear:
     66 
     67 "Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--"
     68 
     69 She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching
     70 under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the
     71 punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat.
     72 
     73 "I never did see the beat of that boy!"
     74 
     75 She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the
     76 tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom.
     77 So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and
     78 shouted:
     79 
     80 "Y-o-u-u TOM!"
     81 
     82 There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to
     83 seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight.
     84 
     85 "There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in
     86 there?"
     87 
     88 "Nothing."
     89 
     90 "Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that
     91 truck?"
     92 
     93 "I don't know, aunt."
     94 
     95 "Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if
     96 you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch."
     97 
     98 The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate--
     99 
    100 "My! Look behind you, aunt!"
    101 
    102 The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The
    103 lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and
    104 disappeared over it.
    105 
    106 His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle
    107 laugh.
    108 
    109 "Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks
    110 enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old
    111 fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks,
    112 as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days,
    113 and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how
    114 long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he
    115 can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down
    116 again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy,
    117 and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile
    118 the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for
    119 us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my
    120 own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash
    121 him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so,
    122 and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man
    123 that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the
    124 Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, *
    125 and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him
    126 work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work
    127 Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more
    128 than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him,
    129 or I'll be the ruination of the child."
    130 
    131 Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home
    132 barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's
    133 wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in
    134 time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the
    135 work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already
    136 through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a
    137 quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways.
    138 
    139 While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity
    140 offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and
    141 very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like
    142 many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she
    143 was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she
    144 loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low
    145 cunning. Said she:
    146 
    147 "Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?"
    148 
    149 "Yes'm."
    150 
    151 "Powerful warm, warn't it?"
    152 
    153 "Yes'm."
    154 
    155 "Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?"
    156 
    157 A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion.
    158 He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said:
    159 
    160 "No'm--well, not very much."
    161 
    162 The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said:
    163 
    164 "But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect
    165 that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing
    166 that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew
    167 where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move:
    168 
    169 "Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?"
    170 
    171 Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of
    172 circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new
    173 inspiration:
    174 
    175 "Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to
    176 pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!"
    177 
    178 The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His
    179 shirt collar was securely sewed.
    180 
    181 "Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey
    182 and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a
    183 singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time."
    184 
    185 She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom
    186 had stumbled into obedient conduct for once.
    187 
    188 But Sidney said:
    189 
    190 "Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread,
    191 but it's black."
    192 
    193 "Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!"
    194 
    195 But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said:
    196 
    197 "Siddy, I'll lick you for that."
    198 
    199 In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into
    200 the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle
    201 carried white thread and the other black. He said:
    202 
    203 "She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes
    204 she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to
    205 geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But
    206 I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!"
    207 
    208 He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very
    209 well though--and loathed him.
    210 
    211 Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles.
    212 Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him
    213 than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore
    214 them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's
    215 misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This
    216 new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just
    217 acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed.
    218 It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble,
    219 produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short
    220 intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how
    221 to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave
    222 him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full
    223 of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an
    224 astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as
    225 strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with
    226 the boy, not the astronomer.
    227 
    228 The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom
    229 checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger
    230 than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive
    231 curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy
    232 was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply
    233 astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth
    234 roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes
    235 on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of
    236 ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The
    237 more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his
    238 nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed
    239 to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but
    240 only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all
    241 the time. Finally Tom said:
    242 
    243 "I can lick you!"
    244 
    245 "I'd like to see you try it."
    246 
    247 "Well, I can do it."
    248 
    249 "No you can't, either."
    250 
    251 "Yes I can."
    252 
    253 "No you can't."
    254 
    255 "I can."
    256 
    257 "You can't."
    258 
    259 "Can!"
    260 
    261 "Can't!"
    262 
    263 An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said:
    264 
    265 "What's your name?"
    266 
    267 "'Tisn't any of your business, maybe."
    268 
    269 "Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business."
    270 
    271 "Well why don't you?"
    272 
    273 "If you say much, I will."
    274 
    275 "Much--much--MUCH. There now."
    276 
    277 "Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with
    278 one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to."
    279 
    280 "Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it."
    281 
    282 "Well I WILL, if you fool with me."
    283 
    284 "Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix."
    285 
    286 "Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!"
    287 
    288 "You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it
    289 off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs."
    290 
    291 "You're a liar!"
    292 
    293 "You're another."
    294 
    295 "You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up."
    296 
    297 "Aw--take a walk!"
    298 
    299 "Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a
    300 rock off'n your head."
    301 
    302 "Oh, of COURSE you will."
    303 
    304 "Well I WILL."
    305 
    306 "Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for?
    307 Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid."
    308 
    309 "I AIN'T afraid."
    310 
    311 "You are."
    312 
    313 "I ain't."
    314 
    315 "You are."
    316 
    317 Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently
    318 they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said:
    319 
    320 "Get away from here!"
    321 
    322 "Go away yourself!"
    323 
    324 "I won't."
    325 
    326 "I won't either."
    327 
    328 So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and
    329 both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with
    330 hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both
    331 were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution,
    332 and Tom said:
    333 
    334 "You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he
    335 can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too."
    336 
    337 "What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger
    338 than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too."
    339 [Both brothers were imaginary.]
    340 
    341 "That's a lie."
    342 
    343 "YOUR saying so don't make it so."
    344 
    345 Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said:
    346 
    347 "I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand
    348 up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep."
    349 
    350 The new boy stepped over promptly, and said:
    351 
    352 "Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it."
    353 
    354 "Don't you crowd me now; you better look out."
    355 
    356 "Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?"
    357 
    358 "By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it."
    359 
    360 The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out
    361 with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys
    362 were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and
    363 for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and
    364 clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered
    365 themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and
    366 through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and
    367 pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he.
    368 
    369 The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage.
    370 
    371 "Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on.
    372 
    373 At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up
    374 and said:
    375 
    376 "Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next
    377 time."
    378 
    379 The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing,
    380 snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and
    381 threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out."
    382 To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and
    383 as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw
    384 it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like
    385 an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he
    386 lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the
    387 enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the
    388 window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called
    389 Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went
    390 away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy.
    391 
    392 He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in
    393 at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt;
    394 and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn
    395 his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in
    396 its firmness.
    397 
    398 
    399 
    400 CHAPTER II
    401 
    402 SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and
    403 fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if
    404 the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in
    405 every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom
    406 and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond
    407 the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far
    408 enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting.
    409 
    410 Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a
    411 long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and
    412 a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board
    413 fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a
    414 burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost
    415 plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant
    416 whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed
    417 fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at
    418 the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from
    419 the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but
    420 now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at
    421 the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there
    422 waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling,
    423 fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only
    424 a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of
    425 water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after
    426 him. Tom said:
    427 
    428 "Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some."
    429 
    430 Jim shook his head and said:
    431 
    432 "Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis
    433 water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars
    434 Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend
    435 to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'."
    436 
    437 "Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always
    438 talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't
    439 ever know."
    440 
    441 "Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n
    442 me. 'Deed she would."
    443 
    444 "SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her
    445 thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but
    446 talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you
    447 a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!"
    448 
    449 Jim began to waver.
    450 
    451 "White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw."
    452 
    453 "My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful
    454 'fraid ole missis--"
    455 
    456 "And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe."
    457 
    458 Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down
    459 his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing
    460 interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was
    461 flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was
    462 whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field
    463 with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye.
    464 
    465 But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had
    466 planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys
    467 would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and
    468 they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very
    469 thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and
    470 examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an
    471 exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an
    472 hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his
    473 pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark
    474 and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a
    475 great, magnificent inspiration.
    476 
    477 He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in
    478 sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been
    479 dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his
    480 heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and
    481 giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned
    482 ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As
    483 he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned
    484 far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious
    485 pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and
    486 considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and
    487 captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself
    488 standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them:
    489 
    490 "Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he
    491 drew up slowly toward the sidewalk.
    492 
    493 "Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and
    494 stiffened down his sides.
    495 
    496 "Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow!
    497 Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was
    498 representing a forty-foot wheel.
    499 
    500 "Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!"
    501 The left hand began to describe circles.
    502 
    503 "Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead
    504 on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow!
    505 Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now!
    506 Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn
    507 round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her
    508 go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!"
    509 (trying the gauge-cocks).
    510 
    511 Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben
    512 stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!"
    513 
    514 No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then
    515 he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as
    516 before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the
    517 apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said:
    518 
    519 "Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?"
    520 
    521 Tom wheeled suddenly and said:
    522 
    523 "Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing."
    524 
    525 "Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of
    526 course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!"
    527 
    528 Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said:
    529 
    530 "What do you call work?"
    531 
    532 "Why, ain't THAT work?"
    533 
    534 Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly:
    535 
    536 "Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom
    537 Sawyer."
    538 
    539 "Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?"
    540 
    541 The brush continued to move.
    542 
    543 "Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get
    544 a chance to whitewash a fence every day?"
    545 
    546 That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom
    547 swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the
    548 effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben
    549 watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more
    550 absorbed. Presently he said:
    551 
    552 "Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little."
    553 
    554 Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind:
    555 
    556 "No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's
    557 awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know
    558 --but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes,
    559 she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very
    560 careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two
    561 thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done."
    562 
    563 "No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd
    564 let YOU, if you was me, Tom."
    565 
    566 "Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to
    567 do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't
    568 let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this
    569 fence and anything was to happen to it--"
    570 
    571 "Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give
    572 you the core of my apple."
    573 
    574 "Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--"
    575 
    576 "I'll give you ALL of it!"
    577 
    578 Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his
    579 heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in
    580 the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by,
    581 dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more
    582 innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every
    583 little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time
    584 Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for
    585 a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in
    586 for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on,
    587 hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being
    588 a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling
    589 in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles,
    590 part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a
    591 spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk,
    592 a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six
    593 fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a
    594 dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of
    595 orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash.
    596 
    597 He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company
    598 --and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out
    599 of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village.
    600 
    601 Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He
    602 had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely,
    603 that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only
    604 necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great
    605 and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have
    606 comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do,
    607 and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And
    608 this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers
    609 or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or
    610 climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in
    611 England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles
    612 on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them
    613 considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service,
    614 that would turn it into work and then they would resign.
    615 
    616 The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place
    617 in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to
    618 report.
    619 
    620 
    621 
    622 CHAPTER III
    623 
    624 TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open
    625 window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom,
    626 breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer
    627 air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur
    628 of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting
    629 --for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her
    630 spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought
    631 that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him
    632 place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't
    633 I go and play now, aunt?"
    634 
    635 "What, a'ready? How much have you done?"
    636 
    637 "It's all done, aunt."
    638 
    639 "Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it."
    640 
    641 "I ain't, aunt; it IS all done."
    642 
    643 Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see
    644 for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent.
    645 of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed,
    646 and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even
    647 a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable.
    648 She said:
    649 
    650 "Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're
    651 a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But
    652 it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long
    653 and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you."
    654 
    655 She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took
    656 him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to
    657 him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a
    658 treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort.
    659 And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a
    660 doughnut.
    661 
    662 Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway
    663 that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and
    664 the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a
    665 hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties
    666 and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect,
    667 and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general
    668 thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at
    669 peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his
    670 black thread and getting him into trouble.
    671 
    672 Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by
    673 the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the
    674 reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square
    675 of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for
    676 conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of
    677 these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These
    678 two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being
    679 better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence
    680 and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through
    681 aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and
    682 hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged,
    683 the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the
    684 necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and
    685 marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone.
    686 
    687 As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new
    688 girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair
    689 plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered
    690 pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A
    691 certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a
    692 memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction;
    693 he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor
    694 little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had
    695 confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest
    696 boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time
    697 she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is
    698 done.
    699 
    700 He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she
    701 had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present,
    702 and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to
    703 win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some
    704 time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous
    705 gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl
    706 was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and
    707 leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer.
    708 She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom
    709 heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face
    710 lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment
    711 before she disappeared.
    712 
    713 The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and
    714 then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if
    715 he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction.
    716 Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his
    717 nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side,
    718 in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally
    719 his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he
    720 hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But
    721 only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his
    722 jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not
    723 much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway.
    724 
    725 He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing
    726 off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom
    727 comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some
    728 window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode
    729 home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions.
    730 
    731 All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered
    732 "what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding
    733 Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar
    734 under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said:
    735 
    736 "Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it."
    737 
    738 "Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into
    739 that sugar if I warn't watching you."
    740 
    741 Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his
    742 immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which
    743 was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped
    744 and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even
    745 controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would
    746 not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly
    747 still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and
    748 there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model
    749 "catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold
    750 himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck
    751 discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to
    752 himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on
    753 the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried
    754 out:
    755 
    756 "Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!"
    757 
    758 Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But
    759 when she got her tongue again, she only said:
    760 
    761 "Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some
    762 other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough."
    763 
    764 Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something
    765 kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a
    766 confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that.
    767 So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart.
    768 Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart
    769 his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the
    770 consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice
    771 of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then,
    772 through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured
    773 himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching
    774 one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and
    775 die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured
    776 himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and
    777 his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how
    778 her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back
    779 her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie
    780 there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose
    781 griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos
    782 of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to
    783 choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he
    784 winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a
    785 luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear
    786 to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it;
    787 it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin
    788 Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an
    789 age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in
    790 clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in
    791 at the other.
    792 
    793 He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought
    794 desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the
    795 river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and
    796 contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while,
    797 that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without
    798 undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought
    799 of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily
    800 increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she
    801 knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms
    802 around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all
    803 the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable
    804 suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it
    805 up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he
    806 rose up sighing and departed in the darkness.
    807 
    808 About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street
    809 to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell
    810 upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the
    811 curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He
    812 climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till
    813 he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion;
    814 then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon
    815 his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor
    816 wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no
    817 shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the
    818 death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him
    819 when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked
    820 out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon
    821 his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright
    822 young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down?
    823 
    824 The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the
    825 holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains!
    826 
    827 The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz
    828 as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound
    829 as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the
    830 fence and shot away in the gloom.
    831 
    832 Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his
    833 drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he
    834 had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought
    835 better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye.
    836 
    837 Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made
    838 mental note of the omission.
    839 
    840 
    841 
    842 CHAPTER IV
    843 
    844 THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful
    845 village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family
    846 worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid
    847 courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of
    848 originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter
    849 of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai.
    850 
    851 Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get
    852 his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his
    853 energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the
    854 Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter.
    855 At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson,
    856 but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human
    857 thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary
    858 took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through
    859 the fog:
    860 
    861 "Blessed are the--a--a--"
    862 
    863 "Poor"--
    864 
    865 "Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--"
    866 
    867 "In spirit--"
    868 
    869 "In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--"
    870 
    871 "THEIRS--"
    872 
    873 "For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom
    874 of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--"
    875 
    876 "Sh--"
    877 
    878 "For they--a--"
    879 
    880 "S, H, A--"
    881 
    882 "For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!"
    883 
    884 "SHALL!"
    885 
    886 "Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a--
    887 blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for
    888 they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you
    889 want to be so mean for?"
    890 
    891 "Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't
    892 do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom,
    893 you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice.
    894 There, now, that's a good boy."
    895 
    896 "All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is."
    897 
    898 "Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice."
    899 
    900 "You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again."
    901 
    902 And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of
    903 curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he
    904 accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow"
    905 knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that
    906 swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would
    907 not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was
    908 inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got
    909 the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its
    910 injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom
    911 contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin
    912 on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school.
    913 
    914 Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went
    915 outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he
    916 dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves;
    917 poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the
    918 kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the
    919 door. But Mary removed the towel and said:
    920 
    921 "Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt
    922 you."
    923 
    924 Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time
    925 he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big
    926 breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes
    927 shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony
    928 of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from
    929 the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped
    930 short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line
    931 there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in
    932 front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she
    933 was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of
    934 color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls
    935 wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately
    936 smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his
    937 hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and
    938 his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of
    939 his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they
    940 were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the
    941 size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed
    942 himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his
    943 vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned
    944 him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and
    945 uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there
    946 was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He
    947 hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she
    948 coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them
    949 out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do
    950 everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively:
    951 
    952 "Please, Tom--that's a good boy."
    953 
    954 So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three
    955 children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his
    956 whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it.
    957 
    958 Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church
    959 service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon
    960 voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons.
    961 The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three
    962 hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort
    963 of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom
    964 dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade:
    965 
    966 "Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?"
    967 
    968 "Yes."
    969 
    970 "What'll you take for her?"
    971 
    972 "What'll you give?"
    973 
    974 "Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook."
    975 
    976 "Less see 'em."
    977 
    978 Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands.
    979 Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and
    980 some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other
    981 boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or
    982 fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of
    983 clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a
    984 quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave,
    985 elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a
    986 boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy
    987 turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear
    988 him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole
    989 class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they
    990 came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses
    991 perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried
    992 through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a
    993 passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of
    994 the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be
    995 exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow
    996 tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty
    997 cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would
    998 have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even
    999 for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it
   1000 was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had
   1001 won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without
   1002 stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and
   1003 he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous
   1004 misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the
   1005 superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out
   1006 and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their
   1007 tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and
   1008 so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy
   1009 circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for
   1010 that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh
   1011 ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's
   1012 mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but
   1013 unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory
   1014 and the eclat that came with it.
   1015 
   1016 In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with
   1017 a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its
   1018 leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent
   1019 makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as
   1020 necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer
   1021 who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert
   1022 --though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of
   1023 music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a
   1024 slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair;
   1025 he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his
   1026 ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his
   1027 mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning
   1028 of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped
   1029 on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note,
   1030 and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the
   1031 fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and
   1032 laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes
   1033 pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest
   1034 of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred
   1035 things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly
   1036 matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had
   1037 acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He
   1038 began after this fashion:
   1039 
   1040 "Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty
   1041 as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There
   1042 --that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see
   1043 one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she
   1044 thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making
   1045 a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you
   1046 how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces
   1047 assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And
   1048 so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the
   1049 oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar
   1050 to us all.
   1051 
   1052 The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights
   1053 and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings
   1054 and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases
   1055 of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every
   1056 sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and
   1057 the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent
   1058 gratitude.
   1059 
   1060 A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which
   1061 was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher,
   1062 accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged
   1063 gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless
   1064 the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless
   1065 and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could
   1066 not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But
   1067 when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in
   1068 a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might
   1069 --cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art
   1070 that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His
   1071 exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this
   1072 angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under
   1073 the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now.
   1074 
   1075 The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr.
   1076 Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The
   1077 middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one
   1078 than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these
   1079 children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material
   1080 he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half
   1081 afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so
   1082 he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon
   1083 the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe
   1084 which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence
   1085 and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher,
   1086 brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to
   1087 be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would
   1088 have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings:
   1089 
   1090 "Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to
   1091 shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you
   1092 wish you was Jeff?"
   1093 
   1094 Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official
   1095 bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments,
   1096 discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a
   1097 target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his
   1098 arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that
   1099 insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off"
   1100 --bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting
   1101 pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones
   1102 lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small
   1103 scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to
   1104 discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up
   1105 at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had
   1106 to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation).
   1107 The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys
   1108 "showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads
   1109 and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and
   1110 beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself
   1111 in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too.
   1112 
   1113 There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy
   1114 complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a
   1115 prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough
   1116 --he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given
   1117 worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind.
   1118 
   1119 And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward
   1120 with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and
   1121 demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters
   1122 was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten
   1123 years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified
   1124 checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated
   1125 to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was
   1126 announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the
   1127 decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero
   1128 up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to
   1129 gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but
   1130 those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too
   1131 late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by
   1132 trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling
   1133 whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes
   1134 of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass.
   1135 
   1136 The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the
   1137 superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked
   1138 somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him
   1139 that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light,
   1140 perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two
   1141 thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would
   1142 strain his capacity, without a doubt.
   1143 
   1144 Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in
   1145 her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain
   1146 troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched;
   1147 a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was
   1148 jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom
   1149 most of all (she thought).
   1150 
   1151 Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath
   1152 would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful
   1153 greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would
   1154 have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The
   1155 Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and
   1156 asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out:
   1157 
   1158 "Tom."
   1159 
   1160 "Oh, no, not Tom--it is--"
   1161 
   1162 "Thomas."
   1163 
   1164 "Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very
   1165 well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't
   1166 you?"
   1167 
   1168 "Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say
   1169 sir. You mustn't forget your manners."
   1170 
   1171 "Thomas Sawyer--sir."
   1172 
   1173 "That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow.
   1174 Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you
   1175 never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for
   1176 knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what
   1177 makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man
   1178 yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all
   1179 owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all
   1180 owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to
   1181 the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and
   1182 gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have
   1183 it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is
   1184 what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those
   1185 two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind
   1186 telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know
   1187 you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no
   1188 doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us
   1189 the names of the first two that were appointed?"
   1190 
   1191 Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed,
   1192 now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to
   1193 himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest
   1194 question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up
   1195 and say:
   1196 
   1197 "Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid."
   1198 
   1199 Tom still hung fire.
   1200 
   1201 "Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first
   1202 two disciples were--"
   1203 
   1204 "DAVID AND GOLIAH!"
   1205 
   1206 Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene.
   1207 
   1208 
   1209 
   1210 CHAPTER V
   1211 
   1212 ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to
   1213 ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon.
   1214 The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and
   1215 occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt
   1216 Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed
   1217 next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open
   1218 window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd
   1219 filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better
   1220 days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other
   1221 unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair,
   1222 smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her
   1223 hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and
   1224 much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg
   1225 could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer
   1226 Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the
   1227 village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young
   1228 heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they
   1229 had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of
   1230 oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet;
   1231 and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful
   1232 care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his
   1233 mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all
   1234 hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them"
   1235 so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as
   1236 usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked
   1237 upon boys who had as snobs.
   1238 
   1239 The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more,
   1240 to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the
   1241 church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the
   1242 choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all
   1243 through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred,
   1244 but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago,
   1245 and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in
   1246 some foreign country.
   1247 
   1248 The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in
   1249 a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country.
   1250 His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached
   1251 a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost
   1252 word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board:
   1253 
   1254   Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease,
   1255 
   1256   Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas?
   1257 
   1258 He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was
   1259 always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies
   1260 would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps,
   1261 and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words
   1262 cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal
   1263 earth."
   1264 
   1265 After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into
   1266 a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and
   1267 things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of
   1268 doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities,
   1269 away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is
   1270 to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it.
   1271 
   1272 And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went
   1273 into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the
   1274 church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself;
   1275 for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United
   1276 States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the
   1277 President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed
   1278 by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of
   1279 European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light
   1280 and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear
   1281 withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with
   1282 a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace
   1283 and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a
   1284 grateful harvest of good. Amen.
   1285 
   1286 There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat
   1287 down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer,
   1288 he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all
   1289 through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously
   1290 --for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the
   1291 clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new
   1292 matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature
   1293 resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the
   1294 midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of
   1295 him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together,
   1296 embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that
   1297 it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread
   1298 of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs
   1299 and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going
   1300 through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly
   1301 safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for
   1302 it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed
   1303 if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the
   1304 closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the
   1305 instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt
   1306 detected the act and made him let it go.
   1307 
   1308 The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through
   1309 an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod
   1310 --and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone
   1311 and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be
   1312 hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after
   1313 church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew
   1314 anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really
   1315 interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving
   1316 picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the
   1317 millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a
   1318 little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of
   1319 the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the
   1320 conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking
   1321 nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he
   1322 wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion.
   1323 
   1324 Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed.
   1325 Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was
   1326 a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it.
   1327 It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to
   1328 take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went
   1329 floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger
   1330 went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless
   1331 legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was
   1332 safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found
   1333 relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle
   1334 dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and
   1335 the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle;
   1336 the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked
   1337 around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again;
   1338 grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a
   1339 gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another;
   1340 began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle
   1341 between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last,
   1342 and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by
   1343 little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There
   1344 was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a
   1345 couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring
   1346 spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind
   1347 fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked
   1348 foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart,
   1349 too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a
   1350 wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle,
   1351 lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even
   1352 closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his
   1353 ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried
   1354 to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant
   1355 around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that;
   1356 yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then
   1357 there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the
   1358 aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in
   1359 front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the
   1360 doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his
   1361 progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit
   1362 with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer
   1363 sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it
   1364 out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and
   1365 died in the distance.
   1366 
   1367 By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with
   1368 suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The
   1369 discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all
   1370 possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest
   1371 sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of
   1372 unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor
   1373 parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to
   1374 the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction
   1375 pronounced.
   1376 
   1377 Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there
   1378 was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of
   1379 variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the
   1380 dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright
   1381 in him to carry it off.
   1382 
   1383 
   1384 
   1385 CHAPTER VI
   1386 
   1387 MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found
   1388 him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He
   1389 generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening
   1390 holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much
   1391 more odious.
   1392 
   1393 Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was
   1394 sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague
   1395 possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he
   1396 investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky
   1397 symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But
   1398 they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected
   1399 further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth
   1400 was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a
   1401 "starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came
   1402 into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that
   1403 would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the
   1404 present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and
   1405 then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that
   1406 laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him
   1407 lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the
   1408 sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the
   1409 necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it,
   1410 so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit.
   1411 
   1412 But Sid slept on unconscious.
   1413 
   1414 Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe.
   1415 
   1416 No result from Sid.
   1417 
   1418 Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and
   1419 then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans.
   1420 
   1421 Sid snored on.
   1422 
   1423 Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course
   1424 worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then
   1425 brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at
   1426 Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said:
   1427 
   1428 "Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter,
   1429 Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously.
   1430 
   1431 Tom moaned out:
   1432 
   1433 "Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me."
   1434 
   1435 "Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie."
   1436 
   1437 "No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody."
   1438 
   1439 "But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this
   1440 way?"
   1441 
   1442 "Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me."
   1443 
   1444 "Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my
   1445 flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?"
   1446 
   1447 "I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done
   1448 to me. When I'm gone--"
   1449 
   1450 "Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--"
   1451 
   1452 "I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you
   1453 give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's
   1454 come to town, and tell her--"
   1455 
   1456 But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in
   1457 reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his
   1458 groans had gathered quite a genuine tone.
   1459 
   1460 Sid flew down-stairs and said:
   1461 
   1462 "Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!"
   1463 
   1464 "Dying!"
   1465 
   1466 "Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!"
   1467 
   1468 "Rubbage! I don't believe it!"
   1469 
   1470 But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels.
   1471 And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached
   1472 the bedside she gasped out:
   1473 
   1474 "You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?"
   1475 
   1476 "Oh, auntie, I'm--"
   1477 
   1478 "What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?"
   1479 
   1480 "Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!"
   1481 
   1482 The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a
   1483 little, then did both together. This restored her and she said:
   1484 
   1485 "Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and
   1486 climb out of this."
   1487 
   1488 The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a
   1489 little foolish, and he said:
   1490 
   1491 "Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my
   1492 tooth at all."
   1493 
   1494 "Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?"
   1495 
   1496 "One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful."
   1497 
   1498 "There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth.
   1499 Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that.
   1500 Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen."
   1501 
   1502 Tom said:
   1503 
   1504 "Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish
   1505 I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay
   1506 home from school."
   1507 
   1508 "Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought
   1509 you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love
   1510 you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart
   1511 with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were
   1512 ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth
   1513 with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the
   1514 chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The
   1515 tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now.
   1516 
   1517 But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school
   1518 after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in
   1519 his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and
   1520 admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the
   1521 exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of
   1522 fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly
   1523 without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and
   1524 he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to
   1525 spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he
   1526 wandered away a dismantled hero.
   1527 
   1528 Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry
   1529 Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and
   1530 dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless
   1531 and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and
   1532 delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like
   1533 him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied
   1534 Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders
   1535 not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance.
   1536 Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown
   1537 men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat
   1538 was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat,
   1539 when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons
   1540 far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat
   1541 of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs
   1542 dragged in the dirt when not rolled up.
   1543 
   1544 Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps
   1545 in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to
   1546 school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could
   1547 go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it
   1548 suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he
   1549 pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring
   1550 and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor
   1551 put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything
   1552 that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every
   1553 harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg.
   1554 
   1555 Tom hailed the romantic outcast:
   1556 
   1557 "Hello, Huckleberry!"
   1558 
   1559 "Hello yourself, and see how you like it."
   1560 
   1561 "What's that you got?"
   1562 
   1563 "Dead cat."
   1564 
   1565 "Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?"
   1566 
   1567 "Bought him off'n a boy."
   1568 
   1569 "What did you give?"
   1570 
   1571 "I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house."
   1572 
   1573 "Where'd you get the blue ticket?"
   1574 
   1575 "Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick."
   1576 
   1577 "Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?"
   1578 
   1579 "Good for? Cure warts with."
   1580 
   1581 "No! Is that so? I know something that's better."
   1582 
   1583 "I bet you don't. What is it?"
   1584 
   1585 "Why, spunk-water."
   1586 
   1587 "Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water."
   1588 
   1589 "You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?"
   1590 
   1591 "No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did."
   1592 
   1593 "Who told you so!"
   1594 
   1595 "Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny
   1596 told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and
   1597 the nigger told me. There now!"
   1598 
   1599 "Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I
   1600 don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now
   1601 you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck."
   1602 
   1603 "Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the
   1604 rain-water was."
   1605 
   1606 "In the daytime?"
   1607 
   1608 "Certainly."
   1609 
   1610 "With his face to the stump?"
   1611 
   1612 "Yes. Least I reckon so."
   1613 
   1614 "Did he say anything?"
   1615 
   1616 "I don't reckon he did. I don't know."
   1617 
   1618 "Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame
   1619 fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go
   1620 all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a
   1621 spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the
   1622 stump and jam your hand in and say:
   1623 
   1624   'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts,
   1625    Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,'
   1626 
   1627 and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then
   1628 turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody.
   1629 Because if you speak the charm's busted."
   1630 
   1631 "Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner
   1632 done."
   1633 
   1634 "No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this
   1635 town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work
   1636 spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way,
   1637 Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many
   1638 warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean."
   1639 
   1640 "Yes, bean's good. I've done that."
   1641 
   1642 "Have you? What's your way?"
   1643 
   1644 "You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some
   1645 blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and
   1646 dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of
   1647 the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece
   1648 that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to
   1649 fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the
   1650 wart, and pretty soon off she comes."
   1651 
   1652 "Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you
   1653 say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better.
   1654 That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and
   1655 most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?"
   1656 
   1657 "Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about
   1658 midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's
   1659 midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see
   1660 'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk;
   1661 and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em
   1662 and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm
   1663 done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart."
   1664 
   1665 "Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?"
   1666 
   1667 "No, but old Mother Hopkins told me."
   1668 
   1669 "Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch."
   1670 
   1671 "Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own
   1672 self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he
   1673 took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that
   1674 very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke
   1675 his arm."
   1676 
   1677 "Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?"
   1678 
   1679 "Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you
   1680 right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz
   1681 when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards."
   1682 
   1683 "Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?"
   1684 
   1685 "To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night."
   1686 
   1687 "But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?"
   1688 
   1689 "Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and
   1690 THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't
   1691 reckon."
   1692 
   1693 "I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?"
   1694 
   1695 "Of course--if you ain't afeard."
   1696 
   1697 "Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?"
   1698 
   1699 "Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me
   1700 a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says
   1701 'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't
   1702 you tell."
   1703 
   1704 "I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me,
   1705 but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?"
   1706 
   1707 "Nothing but a tick."
   1708 
   1709 "Where'd you get him?"
   1710 
   1711 "Out in the woods."
   1712 
   1713 "What'll you take for him?"
   1714 
   1715 "I don't know. I don't want to sell him."
   1716 
   1717 "All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway."
   1718 
   1719 "Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm
   1720 satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me."
   1721 
   1722 "Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I
   1723 wanted to."
   1724 
   1725 "Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a
   1726 pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year."
   1727 
   1728 "Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him."
   1729 
   1730 "Less see it."
   1731 
   1732 Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry
   1733 viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said:
   1734 
   1735 "Is it genuwyne?"
   1736 
   1737 Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy.
   1738 
   1739 "Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade."
   1740 
   1741 Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been
   1742 the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier
   1743 than before.
   1744 
   1745 When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in
   1746 briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed.
   1747 He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with
   1748 business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great
   1749 splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study.
   1750 The interruption roused him.
   1751 
   1752 "Thomas Sawyer!"
   1753 
   1754 Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble.
   1755 
   1756 "Sir!"
   1757 
   1758 "Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?"
   1759 
   1760 Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of
   1761 yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric
   1762 sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the
   1763 girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said:
   1764 
   1765 "I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!"
   1766 
   1767 The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of
   1768 study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his
   1769 mind. The master said:
   1770 
   1771 "You--you did what?"
   1772 
   1773 "Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn."
   1774 
   1775 There was no mistaking the words.
   1776 
   1777 "Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever
   1778 listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your
   1779 jacket."
   1780 
   1781 The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of
   1782 switches notably diminished. Then the order followed:
   1783 
   1784 "Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you."
   1785 
   1786 The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but
   1787 in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of
   1788 his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good
   1789 fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl
   1790 hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks
   1791 and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon
   1792 the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book.
   1793 
   1794 By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur
   1795 rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal
   1796 furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and
   1797 gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she
   1798 cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it
   1799 away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less
   1800 animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it
   1801 remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The
   1802 girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw
   1803 something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time
   1804 the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to
   1805 manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on,
   1806 apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to
   1807 see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she
   1808 gave in and hesitatingly whispered:
   1809 
   1810 "Let me see it."
   1811 
   1812 Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable
   1813 ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the
   1814 girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot
   1815 everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then
   1816 whispered:
   1817 
   1818 "It's nice--make a man."
   1819 
   1820 The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick.
   1821 He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not
   1822 hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered:
   1823 
   1824 "It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along."
   1825 
   1826 Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and
   1827 armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said:
   1828 
   1829 "It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw."
   1830 
   1831 "It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you."
   1832 
   1833 "Oh, will you? When?"
   1834 
   1835 "At noon. Do you go home to dinner?"
   1836 
   1837 "I'll stay if you will."
   1838 
   1839 "Good--that's a whack. What's your name?"
   1840 
   1841 "Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer."
   1842 
   1843 "That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me
   1844 Tom, will you?"
   1845 
   1846 "Yes."
   1847 
   1848 Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from
   1849 the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom
   1850 said:
   1851 
   1852 "Oh, it ain't anything."
   1853 
   1854 "Yes it is."
   1855 
   1856 "No it ain't. You don't want to see."
   1857 
   1858 "Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me."
   1859 
   1860 "You'll tell."
   1861 
   1862 "No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't."
   1863 
   1864 "You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?"
   1865 
   1866 "No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me."
   1867 
   1868 "Oh, YOU don't want to see!"
   1869 
   1870 "Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand
   1871 upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in
   1872 earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were
   1873 revealed: "I LOVE YOU."
   1874 
   1875 "Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened
   1876 and looked pleased, nevertheless.
   1877 
   1878 Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his
   1879 ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the
   1880 house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles
   1881 from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few
   1882 awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a
   1883 word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant.
   1884 
   1885 As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the
   1886 turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the
   1887 reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and
   1888 turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into
   1889 continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and
   1890 got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought
   1891 up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with
   1892 ostentation for months.
   1893 
   1894 
   1895 
   1896 CHAPTER VII
   1897 
   1898 THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his
   1899 ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It
   1900 seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was
   1901 utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of
   1902 sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying
   1903 scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees.
   1904 Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green
   1905 sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of
   1906 distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other
   1907 living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's
   1908 heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to
   1909 pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face
   1910 lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know
   1911 it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the
   1912 tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed
   1913 with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it
   1914 was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned
   1915 him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction.
   1916 
   1917 Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and
   1918 now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an
   1919 instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn
   1920 friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a
   1921 pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner.
   1922 The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were
   1923 interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of
   1924 the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the
   1925 middle of it from top to bottom.
   1926 
   1927 "Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and
   1928 I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side,
   1929 you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over."
   1930 
   1931 "All right, go ahead; start him up."
   1932 
   1933 The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe
   1934 harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This
   1935 change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with
   1936 absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong,
   1937 the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to
   1938 all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The
   1939 tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as
   1940 anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would
   1941 have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be
   1942 twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep
   1943 possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was
   1944 too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was
   1945 angry in a moment. Said he:
   1946 
   1947 "Tom, you let him alone."
   1948 
   1949 "I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe."
   1950 
   1951 "No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone."
   1952 
   1953 "Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much."
   1954 
   1955 "Let him alone, I tell you."
   1956 
   1957 "I won't!"
   1958 
   1959 "You shall--he's on my side of the line."
   1960 
   1961 "Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?"
   1962 
   1963 "I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you
   1964 sha'n't touch him."
   1965 
   1966 "Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I
   1967 blame please with him, or die!"
   1968 
   1969 A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on
   1970 Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from
   1971 the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too
   1972 absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile
   1973 before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over
   1974 them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he
   1975 contributed his bit of variety to it.
   1976 
   1977 When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and
   1978 whispered in her ear:
   1979 
   1980 "Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to
   1981 the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the
   1982 lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same
   1983 way."
   1984 
   1985 So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with
   1986 another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and
   1987 when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they
   1988 sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil
   1989 and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising
   1990 house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking.
   1991 Tom was swimming in bliss. He said:
   1992 
   1993 "Do you love rats?"
   1994 
   1995 "No! I hate them!"
   1996 
   1997 "Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your
   1998 head with a string."
   1999 
   2000 "No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum."
   2001 
   2002 "Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now."
   2003 
   2004 "Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give
   2005 it back to me."
   2006 
   2007 That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their
   2008 legs against the bench in excess of contentment.
   2009 
   2010 "Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom.
   2011 
   2012 "Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good."
   2013 
   2014 "I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't
   2015 shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time.
   2016 I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up."
   2017 
   2018 "Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up."
   2019 
   2020 "Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day,
   2021 Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?"
   2022 
   2023 "What's that?"
   2024 
   2025 "Why, engaged to be married."
   2026 
   2027 "No."
   2028 
   2029 "Would you like to?"
   2030 
   2031 "I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?"
   2032 
   2033 "Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't
   2034 ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's
   2035 all. Anybody can do it."
   2036 
   2037 "Kiss? What do you kiss for?"
   2038 
   2039 "Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that."
   2040 
   2041 "Everybody?"
   2042 
   2043 "Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember
   2044 what I wrote on the slate?"
   2045 
   2046 "Ye--yes."
   2047 
   2048 "What was it?"
   2049 
   2050 "I sha'n't tell you."
   2051 
   2052 "Shall I tell YOU?"
   2053 
   2054 "Ye--yes--but some other time."
   2055 
   2056 "No, now."
   2057 
   2058 "No, not now--to-morrow."
   2059 
   2060 "Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so
   2061 easy."
   2062 
   2063 Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm
   2064 about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth
   2065 close to her ear. And then he added:
   2066 
   2067 "Now you whisper it to me--just the same."
   2068 
   2069 She resisted, for a while, and then said:
   2070 
   2071 "You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you
   2072 mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?"
   2073 
   2074 "No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky."
   2075 
   2076 He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath
   2077 stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!"
   2078 
   2079 Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches,
   2080 with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her
   2081 little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and
   2082 pleaded:
   2083 
   2084 "Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid
   2085 of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her
   2086 apron and the hands.
   2087 
   2088 By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing
   2089 with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and
   2090 said:
   2091 
   2092 "Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't
   2093 ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but
   2094 me, ever never and forever. Will you?"
   2095 
   2096 "No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry
   2097 anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either."
   2098 
   2099 "Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school
   2100 or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't
   2101 anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because
   2102 that's the way you do when you're engaged."
   2103 
   2104 "It's so nice. I never heard of it before."
   2105 
   2106 "Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--"
   2107 
   2108 The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused.
   2109 
   2110 "Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!"
   2111 
   2112 The child began to cry. Tom said:
   2113 
   2114 "Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more."
   2115 
   2116 "Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do."
   2117 
   2118 Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and
   2119 turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with
   2120 soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was
   2121 up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and
   2122 uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping
   2123 she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began
   2124 to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle
   2125 with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and
   2126 entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with
   2127 her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a
   2128 moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly:
   2129 
   2130 "Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you."
   2131 
   2132 No reply--but sobs.
   2133 
   2134 "Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?"
   2135 
   2136 More sobs.
   2137 
   2138 Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an
   2139 andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said:
   2140 
   2141 "Please, Becky, won't you take it?"
   2142 
   2143 She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over
   2144 the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently
   2145 Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she
   2146 flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called:
   2147 
   2148 "Tom! Come back, Tom!"
   2149 
   2150 She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions
   2151 but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid
   2152 herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she
   2153 had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross
   2154 of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers
   2155 about her to exchange sorrows with.
   2156 
   2157 
   2158 
   2159 CHAPTER VIII
   2160 
   2161 TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of
   2162 the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He
   2163 crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing
   2164 juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour
   2165 later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of
   2166 Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off
   2167 in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless
   2168 way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading
   2169 oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had
   2170 even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was
   2171 broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a
   2172 woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense
   2173 of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in
   2174 melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He
   2175 sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands,
   2176 meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and
   2177 he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be
   2178 very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and
   2179 ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the
   2180 grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve
   2181 about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he
   2182 could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl.
   2183 What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been
   2184 treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe
   2185 when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY!
   2186 
   2187 But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one
   2188 constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift
   2189 insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned
   2190 his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever
   2191 so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came
   2192 back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown
   2193 recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and
   2194 jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves
   2195 upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the
   2196 romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all
   2197 war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians,
   2198 and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the
   2199 trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come
   2200 back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and
   2201 prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a
   2202 bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions
   2203 with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than
   2204 this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain
   2205 before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would
   2206 fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go
   2207 plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the
   2208 Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at
   2209 the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village
   2210 and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet
   2211 doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt
   2212 bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his
   2213 slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull
   2214 and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings,
   2215 "It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!"
   2216 
   2217 Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from
   2218 home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore
   2219 he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources
   2220 together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under
   2221 one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded
   2222 hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively:
   2223 
   2224 "What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!"
   2225 
   2226 Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it
   2227 up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides
   2228 were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless!
   2229 He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said:
   2230 
   2231 "Well, that beats anything!"
   2232 
   2233 Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The
   2234 truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and
   2235 all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a
   2236 marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a
   2237 fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just
   2238 used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had
   2239 gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they
   2240 had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably
   2241 failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations.
   2242 He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its
   2243 failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several
   2244 times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places
   2245 afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided
   2246 that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he
   2247 would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he
   2248 found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it.
   2249 He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and
   2250 called--
   2251 
   2252 "Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug,
   2253 doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!"
   2254 
   2255 The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a
   2256 second and then darted under again in a fright.
   2257 
   2258 "He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it."
   2259 
   2260 He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he
   2261 gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have
   2262 the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a
   2263 patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to
   2264 his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been
   2265 standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble
   2266 from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying:
   2267 
   2268 "Brother, go find your brother!"
   2269 
   2270 He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must
   2271 have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last
   2272 repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each
   2273 other.
   2274 
   2275 Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green
   2276 aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a
   2277 suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log,
   2278 disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in
   2279 a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with
   2280 fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an
   2281 answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way
   2282 and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company:
   2283 
   2284 "Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow."
   2285 
   2286 Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom.
   2287 Tom called:
   2288 
   2289 "Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?"
   2290 
   2291 "Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--"
   2292 
   2293 "Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked
   2294 "by the book," from memory.
   2295 
   2296 "Who art thou that dares to hold such language?"
   2297 
   2298 "I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know."
   2299 
   2300 "Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute
   2301 with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!"
   2302 
   2303 They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground,
   2304 struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful
   2305 combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said:
   2306 
   2307 "Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!"
   2308 
   2309 So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and
   2310 by Tom shouted:
   2311 
   2312 "Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?"
   2313 
   2314 "I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of
   2315 it."
   2316 
   2317 "Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in
   2318 the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor
   2319 Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the
   2320 back."
   2321 
   2322 There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received
   2323 the whack and fell.
   2324 
   2325 "Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair."
   2326 
   2327 "Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book."
   2328 
   2329 "Well, it's blamed mean--that's all."
   2330 
   2331 "Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and
   2332 lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and
   2333 you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me."
   2334 
   2335 This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then
   2336 Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to
   2337 bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe,
   2338 representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth,
   2339 gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow
   2340 falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he
   2341 shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a
   2342 nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse.
   2343 
   2344 The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off
   2345 grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern
   2346 civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss.
   2347 They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than
   2348 President of the United States forever.
   2349 
   2350 
   2351 
   2352 CHAPTER IX
   2353 
   2354 AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual.
   2355 They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and
   2356 waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be
   2357 nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He
   2358 would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was
   2359 afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark.
   2360 Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little,
   2361 scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking
   2362 of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to
   2363 crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were
   2364 abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And
   2365 now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could
   2366 locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at
   2367 the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were
   2368 numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was
   2369 answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an
   2370 agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity
   2371 begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven,
   2372 but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his
   2373 half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a
   2374 neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the
   2375 crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed
   2376 brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and
   2377 out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all
   2378 fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped
   2379 to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn
   2380 was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the
   2381 gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall
   2382 grass of the graveyard.
   2383 
   2384 It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a
   2385 hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board
   2386 fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of
   2387 the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the
   2388 whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a
   2389 tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over
   2390 the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory
   2391 of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer
   2392 have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light.
   2393 
   2394 A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the
   2395 spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked
   2396 little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the
   2397 pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the
   2398 sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the
   2399 protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet
   2400 of the grave.
   2401 
   2402 Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting
   2403 of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness.
   2404 Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said
   2405 in a whisper:
   2406 
   2407 "Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?"
   2408 
   2409 Huckleberry whispered:
   2410 
   2411 "I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?"
   2412 
   2413 "I bet it is."
   2414 
   2415 There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter
   2416 inwardly. Then Tom whispered:
   2417 
   2418 "Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?"
   2419 
   2420 "O' course he does. Least his sperrit does."
   2421 
   2422 Tom, after a pause:
   2423 
   2424 "I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm.
   2425 Everybody calls him Hoss."
   2426 
   2427 "A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead
   2428 people, Tom."
   2429 
   2430 This was a damper, and conversation died again.
   2431 
   2432 Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said:
   2433 
   2434 "Sh!"
   2435 
   2436 "What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts.
   2437 
   2438 "Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?"
   2439 
   2440 "I--"
   2441 
   2442 "There! Now you hear it."
   2443 
   2444 "Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?"
   2445 
   2446 "I dono. Think they'll see us?"
   2447 
   2448 "Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't
   2449 come."
   2450 
   2451 "Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't
   2452 doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us
   2453 at all."
   2454 
   2455 "I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver."
   2456 
   2457 "Listen!"
   2458 
   2459 The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled
   2460 sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard.
   2461 
   2462 "Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?"
   2463 
   2464 "It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful."
   2465 
   2466 Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an
   2467 old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable
   2468 little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a
   2469 shudder:
   2470 
   2471 "It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners!
   2472 Can you pray?"
   2473 
   2474 "I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now
   2475 I lay me down to sleep, I--'"
   2476 
   2477 "Sh!"
   2478 
   2479 "What is it, Huck?"
   2480 
   2481 "They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's
   2482 voice."
   2483 
   2484 "No--'tain't so, is it?"
   2485 
   2486 "I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to
   2487 notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!"
   2488 
   2489 "All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here
   2490 they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot!
   2491 They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them
   2492 voices; it's Injun Joe."
   2493 
   2494 "That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a
   2495 dern sight. What kin they be up to?"
   2496 
   2497 The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the
   2498 grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place.
   2499 
   2500 "Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the
   2501 lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson.
   2502 
   2503 Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a
   2504 couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open
   2505 the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came
   2506 and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so
   2507 close the boys could have touched him.
   2508 
   2509 "Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any
   2510 moment."
   2511 
   2512 They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was
   2513 no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight
   2514 of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck
   2515 upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or
   2516 two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid
   2517 with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the
   2518 ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid
   2519 face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered
   2520 with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a
   2521 large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then
   2522 said:
   2523 
   2524 "Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with
   2525 another five, or here she stays."
   2526 
   2527 "That's the talk!" said Injun Joe.
   2528 
   2529 "Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your
   2530 pay in advance, and I've paid you."
   2531 
   2532 "Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the
   2533 doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from
   2534 your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to
   2535 eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get
   2536 even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for
   2537 a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for
   2538 nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!"
   2539 
   2540 He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this
   2541 time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the
   2542 ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed:
   2543 
   2544 "Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had
   2545 grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and
   2546 main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels.
   2547 Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched
   2548 up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and
   2549 round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the
   2550 doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams'
   2551 grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant
   2552 the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the
   2553 young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him
   2554 with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the
   2555 dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in
   2556 the dark.
   2557 
   2558 Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over
   2559 the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately,
   2560 gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered:
   2561 
   2562 "THAT score is settled--damn you."
   2563 
   2564 Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in
   2565 Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three
   2566 --four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His
   2567 hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it
   2568 fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and
   2569 gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's.
   2570 
   2571 "Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said.
   2572 
   2573 "It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving.
   2574 
   2575 "What did you do it for?"
   2576 
   2577 "I! I never done it!"
   2578 
   2579 "Look here! That kind of talk won't wash."
   2580 
   2581 Potter trembled and grew white.
   2582 
   2583 "I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's
   2584 in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle;
   2585 can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old
   2586 feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I
   2587 never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him
   2588 so young and promising."
   2589 
   2590 "Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard
   2591 and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering
   2592 like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched
   2593 you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til
   2594 now."
   2595 
   2596 "Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if
   2597 I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I
   2598 reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but
   2599 never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you
   2600 won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and
   2601 stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you,
   2602 Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid
   2603 murderer, and clasped his appealing hands.
   2604 
   2605 "No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I
   2606 won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say."
   2607 
   2608 "Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I
   2609 live." And Potter began to cry.
   2610 
   2611 "Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering.
   2612 You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any
   2613 tracks behind you."
   2614 
   2615 Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The
   2616 half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered:
   2617 
   2618 "If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he
   2619 had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so
   2620 far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself
   2621 --chicken-heart!"
   2622 
   2623 Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the
   2624 lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the
   2625 moon's. The stillness was complete again, too.
   2626 
   2627 
   2628 
   2629 CHAPTER X
   2630 
   2631 THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with
   2632 horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time,
   2633 apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump
   2634 that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them
   2635 catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay
   2636 near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give
   2637 wings to their feet.
   2638 
   2639 "If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!"
   2640 whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much
   2641 longer."
   2642 
   2643 Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed
   2644 their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it.
   2645 They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst
   2646 through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering
   2647 shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered:
   2648 
   2649 "Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?"
   2650 
   2651 "If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it."
   2652 
   2653 "Do you though?"
   2654 
   2655 "Why, I KNOW it, Tom."
   2656 
   2657 Tom thought a while, then he said:
   2658 
   2659 "Who'll tell? We?"
   2660 
   2661 "What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe
   2662 DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as
   2663 we're a laying here."
   2664 
   2665 "That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck."
   2666 
   2667 "If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's
   2668 generally drunk enough."
   2669 
   2670 Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered:
   2671 
   2672 "Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?"
   2673 
   2674 "What's the reason he don't know it?"
   2675 
   2676 "Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon
   2677 he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?"
   2678 
   2679 "By hokey, that's so, Tom!"
   2680 
   2681 "And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!"
   2682 
   2683 "No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and
   2684 besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt
   2685 him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so,
   2686 his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a
   2687 man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono."
   2688 
   2689 After another reflective silence, Tom said:
   2690 
   2691 "Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?"
   2692 
   2693 "Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't
   2694 make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to
   2695 squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less
   2696 take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep
   2697 mum."
   2698 
   2699 "I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear
   2700 that we--"
   2701 
   2702 "Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little
   2703 rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you
   2704 anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing
   2705 'bout a big thing like this. And blood."
   2706 
   2707 Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and
   2708 awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping
   2709 with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight,
   2710 took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on
   2711 his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow
   2712 down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up
   2713 the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.]
   2714 
   2715    "Huck Finn and
   2716     Tom Sawyer swears
   2717     they will keep mum
   2718     about This and They
   2719     wish They may Drop
   2720     down dead in Their
   2721     Tracks if They ever
   2722     Tell and Rot."
   2723 
   2724 Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing,
   2725 and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel
   2726 and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said:
   2727 
   2728 "Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on
   2729 it."
   2730 
   2731 "What's verdigrease?"
   2732 
   2733 "It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once
   2734 --you'll see."
   2735 
   2736 So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy
   2737 pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In
   2738 time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the
   2739 ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to
   2740 make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle
   2741 close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and
   2742 the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and
   2743 the key thrown away.
   2744 
   2745 A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the
   2746 ruined building, now, but they did not notice it.
   2747 
   2748 "Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling
   2749 --ALWAYS?"
   2750 
   2751 "Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got
   2752 to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?"
   2753 
   2754 "Yes, I reckon that's so."
   2755 
   2756 They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up
   2757 a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys
   2758 clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright.
   2759 
   2760 "Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry.
   2761 
   2762 "I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!"
   2763 
   2764 "No, YOU, Tom!"
   2765 
   2766 "I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!"
   2767 
   2768 "Please, Tom. There 'tis again!"
   2769 
   2770 "Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull
   2771 Harbison." *
   2772 
   2773 [* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of
   2774 him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull
   2775 Harbison."]
   2776 
   2777 "Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a
   2778 bet anything it was a STRAY dog."
   2779 
   2780 The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more.
   2781 
   2782 "Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!"
   2783 
   2784 Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His
   2785 whisper was hardly audible when he said:
   2786 
   2787 "Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!"
   2788 
   2789 "Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?"
   2790 
   2791 "Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together."
   2792 
   2793 "Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout
   2794 where I'LL go to. I been so wicked."
   2795 
   2796 "Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a
   2797 feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried
   2798 --but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay
   2799 I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little.
   2800 
   2801 "YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom
   2802 Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy,
   2803 lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance."
   2804 
   2805 Tom choked off and whispered:
   2806 
   2807 "Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!"
   2808 
   2809 Hucky looked, with joy in his heart.
   2810 
   2811 "Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?"
   2812 
   2813 "Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully,
   2814 you know. NOW who can he mean?"
   2815 
   2816 The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears.
   2817 
   2818 "Sh! What's that?" he whispered.
   2819 
   2820 "Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom."
   2821 
   2822 "That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?"
   2823 
   2824 "I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to
   2825 sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he
   2826 just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever
   2827 coming back to this town any more."
   2828 
   2829 The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more.
   2830 
   2831 "Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?"
   2832 
   2833 "I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!"
   2834 
   2835 Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the
   2836 boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to
   2837 their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily
   2838 down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps
   2839 of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap.
   2840 The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight.
   2841 It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes
   2842 too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed
   2843 out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little
   2844 distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on
   2845 the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing
   2846 within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with
   2847 his nose pointing heavenward.
   2848 
   2849 "Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath.
   2850 
   2851 "Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's
   2852 house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill
   2853 come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and
   2854 there ain't anybody dead there yet."
   2855 
   2856 "Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall
   2857 in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?"
   2858 
   2859 "Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too."
   2860 
   2861 "All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff
   2862 Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about
   2863 these kind of things, Huck."
   2864 
   2865 Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom
   2866 window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution,
   2867 and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his
   2868 escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and
   2869 had been so for an hour.
   2870 
   2871 When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the
   2872 light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not
   2873 been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled
   2874 him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs,
   2875 feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had
   2876 finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were
   2877 averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a
   2878 chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it
   2879 was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into
   2880 silence and let his heart sink down to the depths.
   2881 
   2882 After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in
   2883 the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt
   2884 wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so;
   2885 and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray
   2886 hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any
   2887 more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was
   2888 sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised
   2889 to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling
   2890 that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a
   2891 feeble confidence.
   2892 
   2893 He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid;
   2894 and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was
   2895 unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging,
   2896 along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air
   2897 of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to
   2898 trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his
   2899 desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony
   2900 stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go.
   2901 His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time
   2902 he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with
   2903 a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal
   2904 sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob!
   2905 
   2906 This final feather broke the camel's back.
   2907 
   2908 
   2909 
   2910 CHAPTER XI
   2911 
   2912 CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified
   2913 with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph;
   2914 the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to
   2915 house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the
   2916 schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have
   2917 thought strangely of him if he had not.
   2918 
   2919 A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been
   2920 recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran.
   2921 And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing
   2922 himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and
   2923 that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances,
   2924 especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also
   2925 said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public
   2926 are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a
   2927 verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down
   2928 all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that
   2929 he would be captured before night.
   2930 
   2931 All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak
   2932 vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a
   2933 thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful,
   2934 unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place,
   2935 he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal
   2936 spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody
   2937 pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both
   2938 looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything
   2939 in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the
   2940 grisly spectacle before them.
   2941 
   2942 "Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to
   2943 grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This
   2944 was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His
   2945 hand is here."
   2946 
   2947 Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid
   2948 face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle,
   2949 and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!"
   2950 
   2951 "Who? Who?" from twenty voices.
   2952 
   2953 "Muff Potter!"
   2954 
   2955 "Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!"
   2956 
   2957 People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't
   2958 trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed.
   2959 
   2960 "Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a
   2961 quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company."
   2962 
   2963 The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through,
   2964 ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was
   2965 haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood
   2966 before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face
   2967 in his hands and burst into tears.
   2968 
   2969 "I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never
   2970 done it."
   2971 
   2972 "Who's accused you?" shouted a voice.
   2973 
   2974 This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked
   2975 around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe,
   2976 and exclaimed:
   2977 
   2978 "Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--"
   2979 
   2980 "Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff.
   2981 
   2982 Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to
   2983 the ground. Then he said:
   2984 
   2985 "Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered;
   2986 then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell
   2987 'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more."
   2988 
   2989 Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the
   2990 stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every
   2991 moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head,
   2992 and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had
   2993 finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to
   2994 break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and
   2995 vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and
   2996 it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that.
   2997 
   2998 "Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody
   2999 said.
   3000 
   3001 "I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to
   3002 run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell
   3003 to sobbing again.
   3004 
   3005 Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes
   3006 afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the
   3007 lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe
   3008 had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most
   3009 balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could
   3010 not take their fascinated eyes from his face.
   3011 
   3012 They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should
   3013 offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master.
   3014 
   3015 Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a
   3016 wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd
   3017 that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy
   3018 circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were
   3019 disappointed, for more than one villager remarked:
   3020 
   3021 "It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it."
   3022 
   3023 Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as
   3024 much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said:
   3025 
   3026 "Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me
   3027 awake half the time."
   3028 
   3029 Tom blanched and dropped his eyes.
   3030 
   3031 "It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your
   3032 mind, Tom?"
   3033 
   3034 "Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he
   3035 spilled his coffee.
   3036 
   3037 "And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's
   3038 blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And
   3039 you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it
   3040 you'll tell?"
   3041 
   3042 Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might
   3043 have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's
   3044 face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said:
   3045 
   3046 "Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night
   3047 myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it."
   3048 
   3049 Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed
   3050 satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could,
   3051 and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his
   3052 jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and
   3053 frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow
   3054 listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage
   3055 back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and
   3056 the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to
   3057 make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself.
   3058 
   3059 It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding
   3060 inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his
   3061 mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries,
   3062 though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises;
   3063 he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was
   3064 strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a
   3065 marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he
   3066 could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out
   3067 of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience.
   3068 
   3069 Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his
   3070 opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such
   3071 small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The
   3072 jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge
   3073 of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was
   3074 seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's
   3075 conscience.
   3076 
   3077 The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and
   3078 ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his
   3079 character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead
   3080 in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of
   3081 his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the
   3082 grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not
   3083 to try the case in the courts at present.
   3084 
   3085 
   3086 
   3087 CHAPTER XII
   3088 
   3089 ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret
   3090 troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest
   3091 itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had
   3092 struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the
   3093 wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's
   3094 house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she
   3095 should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an
   3096 interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there
   3097 was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat;
   3098 there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to
   3099 try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are
   3100 infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of
   3101 producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in
   3102 these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a
   3103 fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing,
   3104 but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the
   3105 "Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance
   3106 they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they
   3107 contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up,
   3108 and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and
   3109 what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to
   3110 wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her
   3111 health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they
   3112 had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest
   3113 as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered
   3114 together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed
   3115 with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with
   3116 "hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an
   3117 angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering
   3118 neighbors.
   3119 
   3120 The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a
   3121 windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him
   3122 up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then
   3123 she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to;
   3124 then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets
   3125 till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came
   3126 through his pores"--as Tom said.
   3127 
   3128 Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy
   3129 and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths,
   3130 and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to
   3131 assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She
   3132 calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every
   3133 day with quack cure-alls.
   3134 
   3135 Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase
   3136 filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must
   3137 be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first
   3138 time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with
   3139 gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water
   3140 treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She
   3141 gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the
   3142 result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again;
   3143 for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a
   3144 wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him.
   3145 
   3146 Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be
   3147 romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have
   3148 too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he
   3149 thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of
   3150 professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he
   3151 became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself
   3152 and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no
   3153 misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the
   3154 bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish,
   3155 but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a
   3156 crack in the sitting-room floor with it.
   3157 
   3158 One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow
   3159 cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging
   3160 for a taste. Tom said:
   3161 
   3162 "Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter."
   3163 
   3164 But Peter signified that he did want it.
   3165 
   3166 "You better make sure."
   3167 
   3168 Peter was sure.
   3169 
   3170 "Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't
   3171 anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't
   3172 blame anybody but your own self."
   3173 
   3174 Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the
   3175 Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then
   3176 delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging
   3177 against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc.
   3178 Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of
   3179 enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming
   3180 his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again
   3181 spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time
   3182 to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty
   3183 hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the
   3184 flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment,
   3185 peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter.
   3186 
   3187 "Tom, what on earth ails that cat?"
   3188 
   3189 "I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy.
   3190 
   3191 "Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?"
   3192 
   3193 "Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having
   3194 a good time."
   3195 
   3196 "They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom
   3197 apprehensive.
   3198 
   3199 "Yes'm. That is, I believe they do."
   3200 
   3201 "You DO?"
   3202 
   3203 "Yes'm."
   3204 
   3205 The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized
   3206 by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale
   3207 teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it
   3208 up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the
   3209 usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble.
   3210 
   3211 "Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?"
   3212 
   3213 "I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt."
   3214 
   3215 "Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?"
   3216 
   3217 "Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a
   3218 roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a
   3219 human!"
   3220 
   3221 Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing
   3222 in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy,
   3223 too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little,
   3224 and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently:
   3225 
   3226 "I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good."
   3227 
   3228 Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping
   3229 through his gravity.
   3230 
   3231 "I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter.
   3232 It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--"
   3233 
   3234 "Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you
   3235 try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take
   3236 any more medicine."
   3237 
   3238 Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange
   3239 thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late,
   3240 he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his
   3241 comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to
   3242 be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road.
   3243 Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed
   3244 a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom
   3245 accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about
   3246 Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and
   3247 watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the
   3248 owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks
   3249 ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered
   3250 the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock
   3251 passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next
   3252 instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing,
   3253 chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing
   3254 handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could
   3255 conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if
   3256 Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it
   3257 all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that
   3258 he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came
   3259 war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the
   3260 schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every
   3261 direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost
   3262 upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard
   3263 her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing
   3264 off!"
   3265 
   3266 Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed
   3267 and crestfallen.
   3268 
   3269 
   3270 
   3271 CHAPTER XIII
   3272 
   3273 TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a
   3274 forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found
   3275 out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had
   3276 tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since
   3277 nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them
   3278 blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the
   3279 friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he
   3280 would lead a life of crime. There was no choice.
   3281 
   3282 By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to
   3283 "take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he
   3284 should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very
   3285 hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold
   3286 world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick
   3287 and fast.
   3288 
   3289 Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper
   3290 --hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart.
   3291 Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping
   3292 his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a
   3293 resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by
   3294 roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by
   3295 hoping that Joe would not forget him.
   3296 
   3297 But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been
   3298 going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His
   3299 mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never
   3300 tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him
   3301 and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him
   3302 to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having
   3303 driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die.
   3304 
   3305 As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to
   3306 stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death
   3307 relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans.
   3308 Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and
   3309 dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to
   3310 Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a
   3311 life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate.
   3312 
   3313 Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi
   3314 River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded
   3315 island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as
   3316 a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further
   3317 shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's
   3318 Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a
   3319 matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry
   3320 Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he
   3321 was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on
   3322 the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which
   3323 was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to
   3324 capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he
   3325 could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And
   3326 before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet
   3327 glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear
   3328 something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and
   3329 wait."
   3330 
   3331 About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles,
   3332 and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the
   3333 meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay
   3334 like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the
   3335 quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under
   3336 the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the
   3337 same way. Then a guarded voice said:
   3338 
   3339 "Who goes there?"
   3340 
   3341 "Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names."
   3342 
   3343 "Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom
   3344 had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature.
   3345 
   3346 "'Tis well. Give the countersign."
   3347 
   3348 Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to
   3349 the brooding night:
   3350 
   3351 "BLOOD!"
   3352 
   3353 Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it,
   3354 tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was
   3355 an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it
   3356 lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate.
   3357 
   3358 The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn
   3359 himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a
   3360 skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought
   3361 a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or
   3362 "chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it
   3363 would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought;
   3364 matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire
   3365 smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went
   3366 stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an
   3367 imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and
   3368 suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary
   3369 dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe"
   3370 stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no
   3371 tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the
   3372 village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no
   3373 excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way.
   3374 
   3375 They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and
   3376 Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded
   3377 arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper:
   3378 
   3379 "Luff, and bring her to the wind!"
   3380 
   3381 "Aye-aye, sir!"
   3382 
   3383 "Steady, steady-y-y-y!"
   3384 
   3385 "Steady it is, sir!"
   3386 
   3387 "Let her go off a point!"
   3388 
   3389 "Point it is, sir!"
   3390 
   3391 As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream
   3392 it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for
   3393 "style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular.
   3394 
   3395 "What sail's she carrying?"
   3396 
   3397 "Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir."
   3398 
   3399 "Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye
   3400 --foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!"
   3401 
   3402 "Aye-aye, sir!"
   3403 
   3404 "Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!"
   3405 
   3406 "Aye-aye, sir!"
   3407 
   3408 "Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port,
   3409 port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!"
   3410 
   3411 "Steady it is, sir!"
   3412 
   3413 The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her
   3414 head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so
   3415 there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was
   3416 said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was
   3417 passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed
   3418 where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of
   3419 star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening.
   3420 The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon
   3421 the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing
   3422 "she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death
   3423 with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips.
   3424 It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island
   3425 beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a
   3426 broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last,
   3427 too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the
   3428 current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered
   3429 the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in
   3430 the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the
   3431 head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed
   3432 their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old
   3433 sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to
   3434 shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open
   3435 air in good weather, as became outlaws.
   3436 
   3437 They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty
   3438 steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some
   3439 bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone"
   3440 stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that
   3441 wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited
   3442 island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would
   3443 return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw
   3444 its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple,
   3445 and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines.
   3446 
   3447 When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of
   3448 corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass,
   3449 filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they
   3450 would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting
   3451 camp-fire.
   3452 
   3453 "AIN'T it gay?" said Joe.
   3454 
   3455 "It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?"
   3456 
   3457 "Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!"
   3458 
   3459 "I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want
   3460 nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and
   3461 here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so."
   3462 
   3463 "It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up,
   3464 mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that
   3465 blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe,
   3466 when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and
   3467 then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way."
   3468 
   3469 "Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it,
   3470 you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it."
   3471 
   3472 "You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like
   3473 they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a
   3474 hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put
   3475 sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--"
   3476 
   3477 "What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck.
   3478 
   3479 "I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do
   3480 that if you was a hermit."
   3481 
   3482 "Dern'd if I would," said Huck.
   3483 
   3484 "Well, what would you do?"
   3485 
   3486 "I dono. But I wouldn't do that."
   3487 
   3488 "Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?"
   3489 
   3490 "Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away."
   3491 
   3492 "Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be
   3493 a disgrace."
   3494 
   3495 The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had
   3496 finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded
   3497 it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a
   3498 cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious
   3499 contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and
   3500 secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said:
   3501 
   3502 "What does pirates have to do?"
   3503 
   3504 Tom said:
   3505 
   3506 "Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get
   3507 the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's
   3508 ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make
   3509 'em walk a plank."
   3510 
   3511 "And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill
   3512 the women."
   3513 
   3514 "No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And
   3515 the women's always beautiful, too.
   3516 
   3517 "And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver
   3518 and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm.
   3519 
   3520 "Who?" said Huck.
   3521 
   3522 "Why, the pirates."
   3523 
   3524 Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly.
   3525 
   3526 "I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a
   3527 regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these."
   3528 
   3529 But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough,
   3530 after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand
   3531 that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for
   3532 wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe.
   3533 
   3534 Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the
   3535 eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the
   3536 Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the
   3537 weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main
   3538 had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers
   3539 inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority
   3540 to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to
   3541 say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as
   3542 that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from
   3543 heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge
   3544 of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was
   3545 conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing
   3546 wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then
   3547 the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding
   3548 conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of
   3549 times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin
   3550 plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no
   3551 getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only
   3552 "hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain
   3553 simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So
   3554 they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business,
   3555 their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing.
   3556 Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent
   3557 pirates fell peacefully to sleep.
   3558 
   3559 
   3560 
   3561 CHAPTER XIV
   3562 
   3563 WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and
   3564 rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the
   3565 cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in
   3566 the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred;
   3567 not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops
   3568 stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the
   3569 fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe
   3570 and Huck still slept.
   3571 
   3572 Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently
   3573 the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of
   3574 the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life
   3575 manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to
   3576 work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came
   3577 crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air
   3578 from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he
   3579 was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own
   3580 accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling,
   3581 by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to
   3582 go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its
   3583 curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and
   3584 began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that
   3585 he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a
   3586 doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared,
   3587 from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled
   3588 manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms,
   3589 and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug
   3590 climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to
   3591 it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire,
   3592 your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it
   3593 --which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was
   3594 credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its
   3595 simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at
   3596 its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against
   3597 its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this
   3598 time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head,
   3599 and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of
   3600 enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and
   3601 stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one
   3602 side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel
   3603 and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at
   3604 intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had
   3605 probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to
   3606 be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long
   3607 lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near,
   3608 and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene.
   3609 
   3610 Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a
   3611 shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and
   3612 tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white
   3613 sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the
   3614 distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a
   3615 slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only
   3616 gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge
   3617 between them and civilization.
   3618 
   3619 They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and
   3620 ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found
   3621 a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad
   3622 oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a
   3623 wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee.
   3624 While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to
   3625 hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank
   3626 and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had
   3627 not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some
   3628 handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions
   3629 enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were
   3630 astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did
   3631 not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is
   3632 caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce
   3633 open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient
   3634 of hunger make, too.
   3635 
   3636 They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke,
   3637 and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They
   3638 tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush,
   3639 among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the
   3640 ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came
   3641 upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers.
   3642 
   3643 They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be
   3644 astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles
   3645 long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to
   3646 was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards
   3647 wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the
   3648 middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too
   3649 hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and
   3650 then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon
   3651 began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded
   3652 in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the
   3653 spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing
   3654 crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding
   3655 homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps
   3656 and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and
   3657 none was brave enough to speak his thought.
   3658 
   3659 For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar
   3660 sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a
   3661 clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound
   3662 became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started,
   3663 glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude.
   3664 There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen
   3665 boom came floating down out of the distance.
   3666 
   3667 "What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath.
   3668 
   3669 "I wonder," said Tom in a whisper.
   3670 
   3671 "'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--"
   3672 
   3673 "Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk."
   3674 
   3675 They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom
   3676 troubled the solemn hush.
   3677 
   3678 "Let's go and see."
   3679 
   3680 They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town.
   3681 They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The
   3682 little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting
   3683 with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were
   3684 a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the
   3685 neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what
   3686 the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst
   3687 from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud,
   3688 that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again.
   3689 
   3690 "I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!"
   3691 
   3692 "That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner
   3693 got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him
   3694 come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put
   3695 quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody
   3696 that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop."
   3697 
   3698 "Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread
   3699 do that."
   3700 
   3701 "Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly
   3702 what they SAY over it before they start it out."
   3703 
   3704 "But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and
   3705 they don't."
   3706 
   3707 "Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves.
   3708 Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that."
   3709 
   3710 The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because
   3711 an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be
   3712 expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such
   3713 gravity.
   3714 
   3715 "By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe.
   3716 
   3717 "I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is."
   3718 
   3719 The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought
   3720 flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed:
   3721 
   3722 "Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!"
   3723 
   3724 They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they
   3725 were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account;
   3726 tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor
   3727 lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being
   3728 indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole
   3729 town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety
   3730 was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after
   3731 all.
   3732 
   3733 As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed
   3734 business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They
   3735 were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious
   3736 trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it,
   3737 and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying
   3738 about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their
   3739 account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But
   3740 when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to
   3741 talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently
   3742 wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe
   3743 could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not
   3744 enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they
   3745 grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by
   3746 Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others
   3747 might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but--
   3748 
   3749 Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined
   3750 in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get
   3751 out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness
   3752 clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to
   3753 rest for the moment.
   3754 
   3755 As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe
   3756 followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time,
   3757 watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees,
   3758 and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung
   3759 by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large
   3760 semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose
   3761 two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully
   3762 wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up
   3763 and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and
   3764 removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the
   3765 hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them
   3766 a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that
   3767 kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his
   3768 way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing,
   3769 and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar.
   3770 
   3771 
   3772 
   3773 CHAPTER XV
   3774 
   3775 A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading
   3776 toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was
   3777 half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he
   3778 struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam
   3779 quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he
   3780 had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along
   3781 till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his
   3782 jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through
   3783 the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before
   3784 ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and
   3785 saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank.
   3786 Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank,
   3787 watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four
   3788 strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's
   3789 stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting.
   3790 
   3791 Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast
   3792 off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up,
   3793 against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in
   3794 his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At
   3795 the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom
   3796 slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards
   3797 downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers.
   3798 
   3799 He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his
   3800 aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in
   3801 at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat
   3802 Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together,
   3803 talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the
   3804 door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he
   3805 pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing
   3806 cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might
   3807 squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began,
   3808 warily.
   3809 
   3810 "What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up.
   3811 "Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of
   3812 strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid."
   3813 
   3814 Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed"
   3815 himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his
   3816 aunt's foot.
   3817 
   3818 "But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say
   3819 --only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He
   3820 warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and
   3821 he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry.
   3822 
   3823 "It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to
   3824 every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he
   3825 could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking
   3826 that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself
   3827 because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never,
   3828 never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart
   3829 would break.
   3830 
   3831 "I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been
   3832 better in some ways--"
   3833 
   3834 "SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not
   3835 see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take
   3836 care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't
   3837 know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a
   3838 comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most."
   3839 
   3840 "The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of
   3841 the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my
   3842 Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him
   3843 sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over
   3844 again I'd hug him and bless him for it."
   3845 
   3846 "Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just
   3847 exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took
   3848 and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur
   3849 would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head
   3850 with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his
   3851 troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--"
   3852 
   3853 But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely
   3854 down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than
   3855 anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word
   3856 for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself
   3857 than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's
   3858 grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with
   3859 joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to
   3860 his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still.
   3861 
   3862 He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was
   3863 conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim;
   3864 then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the
   3865 missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something"
   3866 soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that
   3867 the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town
   3868 below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged
   3869 against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village
   3870 --and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have
   3871 driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the
   3872 search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the
   3873 drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good
   3874 swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday
   3875 night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be
   3876 given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom
   3877 shuddered.
   3878 
   3879 Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a
   3880 mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each
   3881 other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly
   3882 was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid
   3883 snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart.
   3884 
   3885 Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so
   3886 appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old
   3887 trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she
   3888 was through.
   3889 
   3890 He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making
   3891 broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and
   3892 turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her
   3893 sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the
   3894 candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full
   3895 of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the
   3896 candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His
   3897 face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark
   3898 hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and
   3899 straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him.
   3900 
   3901 He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large
   3902 there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was
   3903 tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and
   3904 slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped
   3905 into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a
   3906 mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself
   3907 stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for
   3908 this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the
   3909 skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore
   3910 legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be
   3911 made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and
   3912 entered the woods.
   3913 
   3914 He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep
   3915 awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far
   3916 spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the
   3917 island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the
   3918 great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A
   3919 little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and
   3920 heard Joe say:
   3921 
   3922 "No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He
   3923 knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for
   3924 that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?"
   3925 
   3926 "Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?"
   3927 
   3928 "Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't
   3929 back here to breakfast."
   3930 
   3931 "Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping
   3932 grandly into camp.
   3933 
   3934 A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as
   3935 the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his
   3936 adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the
   3937 tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till
   3938 noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore.
   3939 
   3940 
   3941 
   3942 CHAPTER XVI
   3943 
   3944 AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the
   3945 bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a
   3946 soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands.
   3947 Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They
   3948 were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English
   3949 walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on
   3950 Friday morning.
   3951 
   3952 After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and
   3953 chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until
   3954 they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal
   3955 water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their
   3956 legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun.
   3957 And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each
   3958 other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with
   3959 averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and
   3960 struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all
   3961 went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing,
   3962 sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time.
   3963 
   3964 When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the
   3965 dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by
   3966 and by break for the water again and go through the original
   3967 performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked
   3968 skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a
   3969 ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none
   3970 would yield this proudest post to his neighbor.
   3971 
   3972 Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and
   3973 "keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another
   3974 swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off
   3975 his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his
   3976 ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the
   3977 protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he
   3978 had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to
   3979 rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell
   3980 to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay
   3981 drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with
   3982 his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his
   3983 weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He
   3984 erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving
   3985 the other boys together and joining them.
   3986 
   3987 But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so
   3988 homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay
   3989 very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted,
   3990 but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready
   3991 to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon,
   3992 he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of
   3993 cheerfulness:
   3994 
   3995 "I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore
   3996 it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light
   3997 on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?"
   3998 
   3999 But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply.
   4000 Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was
   4001 discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking
   4002 very gloomy. Finally he said:
   4003 
   4004 "Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome."
   4005 
   4006 "Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of
   4007 the fishing that's here."
   4008 
   4009 "I don't care for fishing. I want to go home."
   4010 
   4011 "But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere."
   4012 
   4013 "Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there
   4014 ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home."
   4015 
   4016 "Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon."
   4017 
   4018 "Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one.
   4019 I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little.
   4020 
   4021 "Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck?
   4022 Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like
   4023 it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?"
   4024 
   4025 Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it.
   4026 
   4027 "I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising.
   4028 "There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself.
   4029 
   4030 "Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get
   4031 laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies.
   4032 We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can
   4033 get along without him, per'aps."
   4034 
   4035 But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go
   4036 sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see
   4037 Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an
   4038 ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade
   4039 off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at
   4040 Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said:
   4041 
   4042 "I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now
   4043 it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom."
   4044 
   4045 "I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay."
   4046 
   4047 "Tom, I better go."
   4048 
   4049 "Well, go 'long--who's hendering you."
   4050 
   4051 Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said:
   4052 
   4053 "Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for
   4054 you when we get to shore."
   4055 
   4056 "Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all."
   4057 
   4058 Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a
   4059 strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too.
   4060 He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It
   4061 suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He
   4062 made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his
   4063 comrades, yelling:
   4064 
   4065 "Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!"
   4066 
   4067 They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they
   4068 were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at
   4069 last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a
   4070 war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had
   4071 told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible
   4072 excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret
   4073 would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had
   4074 meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction.
   4075 
   4076 The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will,
   4077 chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the
   4078 genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to
   4079 learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to
   4080 try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never
   4081 smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit"
   4082 the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway.
   4083 
   4084 Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff,
   4085 charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant
   4086 taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said:
   4087 
   4088 "Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt
   4089 long ago."
   4090 
   4091 "So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing."
   4092 
   4093 "Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I
   4094 wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom.
   4095 
   4096 "That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk
   4097 just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't."
   4098 
   4099 "Yes--heaps of times," said Huck.
   4100 
   4101 "Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the
   4102 slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and
   4103 Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember,
   4104 Huck, 'bout me saying that?"
   4105 
   4106 "Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white
   4107 alley. No, 'twas the day before."
   4108 
   4109 "There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it."
   4110 
   4111 "I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel
   4112 sick."
   4113 
   4114 "Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you
   4115 Jeff Thatcher couldn't."
   4116 
   4117 "Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him
   4118 try it once. HE'D see!"
   4119 
   4120 "I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller
   4121 tackle it once."
   4122 
   4123 "Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any
   4124 more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM."
   4125 
   4126 "'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now."
   4127 
   4128 "So do I."
   4129 
   4130 "Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're
   4131 around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.'
   4132 And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll
   4133 say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't
   4134 very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG
   4135 enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as
   4136 ca'm, and then just see 'em look!"
   4137 
   4138 "By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!"
   4139 
   4140 "So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating,
   4141 won't they wish they'd been along?"
   4142 
   4143 "Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!"
   4144 
   4145 So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow
   4146 disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously
   4147 increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting
   4148 fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues
   4149 fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their
   4150 throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings
   4151 followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable,
   4152 now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed.
   4153 Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might
   4154 and main. Joe said feebly:
   4155 
   4156 "I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it."
   4157 
   4158 Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance:
   4159 
   4160 "I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the
   4161 spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it."
   4162 
   4163 So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome,
   4164 and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both
   4165 very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they
   4166 had had any trouble they had got rid of it.
   4167 
   4168 They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look,
   4169 and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare
   4170 theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they
   4171 ate at dinner had disagreed with them.
   4172 
   4173 About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding
   4174 oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys
   4175 huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of
   4176 the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was
   4177 stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush
   4178 continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in
   4179 the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that
   4180 vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by
   4181 another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came
   4182 sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting
   4183 breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit
   4184 of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned
   4185 night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and
   4186 distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white,
   4187 startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling
   4188 down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A
   4189 sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the
   4190 flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the
   4191 forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops
   4192 right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick
   4193 gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the
   4194 leaves.
   4195 
   4196 "Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom.
   4197 
   4198 They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no
   4199 two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the
   4200 trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after
   4201 another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a
   4202 drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets
   4203 along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring
   4204 wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly.
   4205 However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under
   4206 the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company
   4207 in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the
   4208 old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have
   4209 allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the
   4210 sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast.
   4211 The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and
   4212 bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank.
   4213 Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of
   4214 lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in
   4215 clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy
   4216 river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim
   4217 outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the
   4218 drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while
   4219 some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger
   4220 growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting
   4221 explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm
   4222 culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island
   4223 to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and
   4224 deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a
   4225 wild night for homeless young heads to be out in.
   4226 
   4227 But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker
   4228 and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The
   4229 boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was
   4230 still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the
   4231 shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and
   4232 they were not under it when the catastrophe happened.
   4233 
   4234 Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were
   4235 but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision
   4236 against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through
   4237 and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently
   4238 discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had
   4239 been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from
   4240 the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so
   4241 they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the
   4242 under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then
   4243 they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and
   4244 were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a
   4245 feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified
   4246 their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to
   4247 sleep on, anywhere around.
   4248 
   4249 As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them,
   4250 and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got
   4251 scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After
   4252 the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once
   4253 more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as
   4254 he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming,
   4255 or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray
   4256 of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This
   4257 was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a
   4258 change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before
   4259 they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like
   4260 so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went
   4261 tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement.
   4262 
   4263 By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon
   4264 each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped
   4265 each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an
   4266 extremely satisfactory one.
   4267 
   4268 They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a
   4269 difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of
   4270 hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple
   4271 impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other
   4272 process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished
   4273 they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with
   4274 such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe
   4275 and took their whiff as it passed, in due form.
   4276 
   4277 And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had
   4278 gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without
   4279 having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to
   4280 be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high
   4281 promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after
   4282 supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening.
   4283 They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would
   4284 have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will
   4285 leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use
   4286 for them at present.
   4287 
   4288 
   4289 
   4290 CHAPTER XVII
   4291 
   4292 BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil
   4293 Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being
   4294 put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet
   4295 possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all
   4296 conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air,
   4297 and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a
   4298 burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and
   4299 gradually gave them up.
   4300 
   4301 In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the
   4302 deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found
   4303 nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized:
   4304 
   4305 "Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got
   4306 anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob.
   4307 
   4308 Presently she stopped, and said to herself:
   4309 
   4310 "It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say
   4311 that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll
   4312 never, never, never see him any more."
   4313 
   4314 This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling
   4315 down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of
   4316 Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and
   4317 talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they
   4318 saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with
   4319 awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker
   4320 pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and
   4321 then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am
   4322 now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just
   4323 this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you
   4324 know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!"
   4325 
   4326 Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and
   4327 many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or
   4328 less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided
   4329 who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them,
   4330 the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and
   4331 were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no
   4332 other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the
   4333 remembrance:
   4334 
   4335 "Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once."
   4336 
   4337 But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that,
   4338 and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered
   4339 away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices.
   4340 
   4341 When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell
   4342 began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still
   4343 Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush
   4344 that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment
   4345 in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there
   4346 was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses
   4347 as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None
   4348 could remember when the little church had been so full before. There
   4349 was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly
   4350 entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all
   4351 in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well,
   4352 rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front
   4353 pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by
   4354 muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed.
   4355 A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection
   4356 and the Life."
   4357 
   4358 As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the
   4359 graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that
   4360 every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in
   4361 remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always
   4362 before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor
   4363 boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the
   4364 departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the
   4365 people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes
   4366 were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had
   4367 seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The
   4368 congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on,
   4369 till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping
   4370 mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way
   4371 to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit.
   4372 
   4373 There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment
   4374 later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes
   4375 above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then
   4376 another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one
   4377 impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came
   4378 marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of
   4379 drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in
   4380 the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon!
   4381 
   4382 Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored
   4383 ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while
   4384 poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to
   4385 do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and
   4386 started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said:
   4387 
   4388 "Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck."
   4389 
   4390 "And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And
   4391 the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing
   4392 capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before.
   4393 
   4394 Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God
   4395 from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!"
   4396 
   4397 And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and
   4398 while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the
   4399 envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was
   4400 the proudest moment of his life.
   4401 
   4402 As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be
   4403 willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that
   4404 once more.
   4405 
   4406 Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's
   4407 varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew
   4408 which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself.
   4409 
   4410 
   4411 
   4412 CHAPTER XVIII
   4413 
   4414 THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his
   4415 brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to
   4416 the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six
   4417 miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the
   4418 town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and
   4419 alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a
   4420 chaos of invalided benches.
   4421 
   4422 At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to
   4423 Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of
   4424 talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said:
   4425 
   4426 "Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody
   4427 suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity
   4428 you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come
   4429 over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give
   4430 me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off."
   4431 
   4432 "Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you
   4433 would if you had thought of it."
   4434 
   4435 "Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say,
   4436 now, would you, if you'd thought of it?"
   4437 
   4438 "I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything."
   4439 
   4440 "Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved
   4441 tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd
   4442 cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it."
   4443 
   4444 "Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's
   4445 giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of
   4446 anything."
   4447 
   4448 "More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and
   4449 DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and
   4450 wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so
   4451 little."
   4452 
   4453 "Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom.
   4454 
   4455 "I'd know it better if you acted more like it."
   4456 
   4457 "I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I
   4458 dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?"
   4459 
   4460 "It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing.
   4461 What did you dream?"
   4462 
   4463 "Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the
   4464 bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him."
   4465 
   4466 "Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take
   4467 even that much trouble about us."
   4468 
   4469 "And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here."
   4470 
   4471 "Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?"
   4472 
   4473 "Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now."
   4474 
   4475 "Well, try to recollect--can't you?"
   4476 
   4477 "Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--"
   4478 
   4479 "Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!"
   4480 
   4481 Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then
   4482 said:
   4483 
   4484 "I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!"
   4485 
   4486 "Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!"
   4487 
   4488 "And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'"
   4489 
   4490 "Go ON, Tom!"
   4491 
   4492 "Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you
   4493 believed the door was open."
   4494 
   4495 "As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!"
   4496 
   4497 "And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if
   4498 you made Sid go and--and--"
   4499 
   4500 "Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?"
   4501 
   4502 "You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it."
   4503 
   4504 "Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my
   4505 days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny
   4506 Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her
   4507 get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!"
   4508 
   4509 "Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I
   4510 warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more
   4511 responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something."
   4512 
   4513 "And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!"
   4514 
   4515 "And then you began to cry."
   4516 
   4517 "So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--"
   4518 
   4519 "Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same,
   4520 and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd
   4521 throwed it out her own self--"
   4522 
   4523 "Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you
   4524 was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!"
   4525 
   4526 "Then Sid he said--he said--"
   4527 
   4528 "I don't think I said anything," said Sid.
   4529 
   4530 "Yes you did, Sid," said Mary.
   4531 
   4532 "Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?"
   4533 
   4534 "He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone
   4535 to, but if I'd been better sometimes--"
   4536 
   4537 "THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!"
   4538 
   4539 "And you shut him up sharp."
   4540 
   4541 "I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel
   4542 there, somewheres!"
   4543 
   4544 "And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and
   4545 you told about Peter and the Painkiller--"
   4546 
   4547 "Just as true as I live!"
   4548 
   4549 "And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for
   4550 us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss
   4551 Harper hugged and cried, and she went."
   4552 
   4553 "It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in
   4554 these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a'
   4555 seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!"
   4556 
   4557 "Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every
   4558 word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and
   4559 wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off
   4560 being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you
   4561 looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned
   4562 over and kissed you on the lips."
   4563 
   4564 "Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And
   4565 she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the
   4566 guiltiest of villains.
   4567 
   4568 "It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized
   4569 just audibly.
   4570 
   4571 "Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he
   4572 was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if
   4573 you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the
   4574 good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering
   4575 and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though
   4576 goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His
   4577 blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's
   4578 few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long
   4579 night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've
   4580 hendered me long enough."
   4581 
   4582 The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper
   4583 and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better
   4584 judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the
   4585 house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any
   4586 mistakes in it!"
   4587 
   4588 What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing,
   4589 but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the
   4590 public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see
   4591 the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food
   4592 and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as
   4593 proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the
   4594 drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie
   4595 into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away
   4596 at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would
   4597 have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his
   4598 glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a
   4599 circus.
   4600 
   4601 At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered
   4602 such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not
   4603 long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their
   4604 adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing
   4605 likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish
   4606 material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely
   4607 puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached.
   4608 
   4609 Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory
   4610 was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished,
   4611 maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see
   4612 that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she
   4613 arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group
   4614 of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was
   4615 tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes,
   4616 pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter
   4617 when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her
   4618 captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye
   4619 in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious
   4620 vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set
   4621 him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that
   4622 he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved
   4623 irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and
   4624 wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more
   4625 particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp
   4626 pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but
   4627 her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She
   4628 said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity:
   4629 
   4630 "Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?"
   4631 
   4632 "I did come--didn't you see me?"
   4633 
   4634 "Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?"
   4635 
   4636 "I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU."
   4637 
   4638 "Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about
   4639 the picnic."
   4640 
   4641 "Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?"
   4642 
   4643 "My ma's going to let me have one."
   4644 
   4645 "Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come."
   4646 
   4647 "Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I
   4648 want, and I want you."
   4649 
   4650 "That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?"
   4651 
   4652 "By and by. Maybe about vacation."
   4653 
   4654 "Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?"
   4655 
   4656 "Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced
   4657 ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence
   4658 about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the
   4659 great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within
   4660 three feet of it."
   4661 
   4662 "Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller.
   4663 
   4664 "Yes."
   4665 
   4666 "And me?" said Sally Rogers.
   4667 
   4668 "Yes."
   4669 
   4670 "And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?"
   4671 
   4672 "Yes."
   4673 
   4674 And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged
   4675 for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still
   4676 talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears
   4677 came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on
   4678 chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of
   4679 everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and
   4680 had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded
   4681 pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast
   4682 in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what
   4683 SHE'D do.
   4684 
   4685 At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant
   4686 self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate
   4687 her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden
   4688 falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind
   4689 the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so
   4690 absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book,
   4691 that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides.
   4692 Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for
   4693 throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He
   4694 called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He
   4695 wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked,
   4696 for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He
   4697 did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he
   4698 could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as
   4699 otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and
   4700 again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could
   4701 not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that
   4702 Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the
   4703 living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her
   4704 fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered.
   4705 
   4706 Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to
   4707 attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in
   4708 vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever
   4709 going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those
   4710 things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school
   4711 let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it.
   4712 
   4713 "Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole
   4714 town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is
   4715 aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw
   4716 this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch
   4717 you out! I'll just take and--"
   4718 
   4719 And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy
   4720 --pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You
   4721 holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the
   4722 imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction.
   4723 
   4724 Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of
   4725 Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the
   4726 other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but
   4727 as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph
   4728 began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness
   4729 followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her
   4730 ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she
   4731 grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When
   4732 poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept
   4733 exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience
   4734 at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and
   4735 burst into tears, and got up and walked away.
   4736 
   4737 Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she
   4738 said:
   4739 
   4740 "Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!"
   4741 
   4742 So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said
   4743 she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on,
   4744 crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was
   4745 humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl
   4746 had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer.
   4747 He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him.
   4748 He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much
   4749 risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his
   4750 opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and
   4751 poured ink upon the page.
   4752 
   4753 Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act,
   4754 and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now,
   4755 intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their
   4756 troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she
   4757 had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she
   4758 was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with
   4759 shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged
   4760 spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain.
   4761 
   4762 
   4763 
   4764 CHAPTER XIX
   4765 
   4766 TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt
   4767 said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an
   4768 unpromising market:
   4769 
   4770 "Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!"
   4771 
   4772 "Auntie, what have I done?"
   4773 
   4774 "Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an
   4775 old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage
   4776 about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that
   4777 you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I
   4778 don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes
   4779 me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make
   4780 such a fool of myself and never say a word."
   4781 
   4782 This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had
   4783 seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked
   4784 mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything
   4785 to say for a moment. Then he said:
   4786 
   4787 "Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think."
   4788 
   4789 "Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own
   4790 selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from
   4791 Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could
   4792 think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think
   4793 to pity us and save us from sorrow."
   4794 
   4795 "Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I
   4796 didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you
   4797 that night."
   4798 
   4799 "What did you come for, then?"
   4800 
   4801 "It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got
   4802 drownded."
   4803 
   4804 "Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could
   4805 believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never
   4806 did--and I know it, Tom."
   4807 
   4808 "Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't."
   4809 
   4810 "Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times
   4811 worse."
   4812 
   4813 "It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from
   4814 grieving--that was all that made me come."
   4815 
   4816 "I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power
   4817 of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it
   4818 ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?"
   4819 
   4820 "Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got
   4821 all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I
   4822 couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my
   4823 pocket and kept mum."
   4824 
   4825 "What bark?"
   4826 
   4827 "The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now,
   4828 you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest."
   4829 
   4830 The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness
   4831 dawned in her eyes.
   4832 
   4833 "DID you kiss me, Tom?"
   4834 
   4835 "Why, yes, I did."
   4836 
   4837 "Are you sure you did, Tom?"
   4838 
   4839 "Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure."
   4840 
   4841 "What did you kiss me for, Tom?"
   4842 
   4843 "Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry."
   4844 
   4845 The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in
   4846 her voice when she said:
   4847 
   4848 "Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't
   4849 bother me any more."
   4850 
   4851 The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a
   4852 jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her
   4853 hand, and said to herself:
   4854 
   4855 "No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a
   4856 blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the
   4857 Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such
   4858 goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a
   4859 lie. I won't look."
   4860 
   4861 She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put
   4862 out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once
   4863 more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the
   4864 thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me."
   4865 So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's
   4866 piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the
   4867 boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!"
   4868 
   4869 
   4870 
   4871 CHAPTER XX
   4872 
   4873 THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom,
   4874 that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy
   4875 again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky
   4876 Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his
   4877 manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said:
   4878 
   4879 "I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever,
   4880 ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't
   4881 you?"
   4882 
   4883 The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face:
   4884 
   4885 "I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll
   4886 never speak to you again."
   4887 
   4888 She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not
   4889 even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the
   4890 right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a
   4891 fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were
   4892 a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently
   4893 encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She
   4894 hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to
   4895 Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to
   4896 "take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured
   4897 spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred
   4898 Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away.
   4899 
   4900 Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself.
   4901 The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied
   4902 ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty
   4903 had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village
   4904 schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and
   4905 absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept
   4906 that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was
   4907 perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy
   4908 and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two
   4909 theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in
   4910 the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the
   4911 door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious
   4912 moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant
   4913 she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's
   4914 ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the
   4915 leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored
   4916 frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell
   4917 on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse
   4918 of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the
   4919 hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust
   4920 the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with
   4921 shame and vexation.
   4922 
   4923 "Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a
   4924 person and look at what they're looking at."
   4925 
   4926 "How could I know you was looking at anything?"
   4927 
   4928 "You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're
   4929 going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be
   4930 whipped, and I never was whipped in school."
   4931 
   4932 Then she stamped her little foot and said:
   4933 
   4934 "BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen.
   4935 You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she
   4936 flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying.
   4937 
   4938 Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said
   4939 to himself:
   4940 
   4941 "What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school!
   4942 Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so
   4943 thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell
   4944 old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting
   4945 even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask
   4946 who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way
   4947 he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the
   4948 right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell
   4949 on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a
   4950 kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way
   4951 out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All
   4952 right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it
   4953 out!"
   4954 
   4955 Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments
   4956 the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong
   4957 interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls'
   4958 side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he
   4959 did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He
   4960 could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently
   4961 the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full
   4962 of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her
   4963 lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She
   4964 did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he
   4965 spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only
   4966 seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be
   4967 glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she
   4968 found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an
   4969 impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and
   4970 forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell
   4971 about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save
   4972 his life!"
   4973 
   4974 Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all
   4975 broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly
   4976 upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he
   4977 had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck
   4978 to the denial from principle.
   4979 
   4980 A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air
   4981 was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened
   4982 himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book,
   4983 but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the
   4984 pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched
   4985 his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently
   4986 for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read!
   4987 Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit
   4988 look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot
   4989 his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash,
   4990 too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention.
   4991 Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring
   4992 through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little
   4993 instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom
   4994 only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help
   4995 for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school.
   4996 Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even
   4997 the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten
   4998 --the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?"
   4999 
   5000 There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness
   5001 continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt.
   5002 
   5003 "Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?"
   5004 
   5005 A denial. Another pause.
   5006 
   5007 "Joseph Harper, did you?"
   5008 
   5009 Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the
   5010 slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of
   5011 boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls:
   5012 
   5013 "Amy Lawrence?"
   5014 
   5015 A shake of the head.
   5016 
   5017 "Gracie Miller?"
   5018 
   5019 The same sign.
   5020 
   5021 "Susan Harper, did you do this?"
   5022 
   5023 Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling
   5024 from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of
   5025 the situation.
   5026 
   5027 "Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror]
   5028 --"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal]
   5029 --"did you tear this book?"
   5030 
   5031 A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his
   5032 feet and shouted--"I done it!"
   5033 
   5034 The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a
   5035 moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped
   5036 forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the
   5037 adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay
   5038 enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own
   5039 act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr.
   5040 Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the
   5041 added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be
   5042 dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his
   5043 captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either.
   5044 
   5045 Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple;
   5046 for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting
   5047 her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way,
   5048 soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's
   5049 latest words lingering dreamily in his ear--
   5050 
   5051 "Tom, how COULD you be so noble!"
   5052 
   5053 
   5054 
   5055 CHAPTER XXI
   5056 
   5057 VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew
   5058 severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a
   5059 good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom
   5060 idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and
   5061 young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins'
   5062 lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under
   5063 his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle
   5064 age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great
   5065 day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he
   5066 seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least
   5067 shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their
   5068 days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They
   5069 threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept
   5070 ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful
   5071 success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from
   5072 the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a
   5073 plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's
   5074 boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons
   5075 for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and
   5076 had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go
   5077 on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to
   5078 interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great
   5079 occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy
   5080 said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on
   5081 Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his
   5082 chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried
   5083 away to school.
   5084 
   5085 In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in
   5086 the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with
   5087 wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in
   5088 his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him.
   5089 He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and
   5090 six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town
   5091 and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of
   5092 citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the
   5093 scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of
   5094 small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort;
   5095 rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in
   5096 lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their
   5097 grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and
   5098 the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with
   5099 non-participating scholars.
   5100 
   5101 The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly
   5102 recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the
   5103 stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and
   5104 spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the
   5105 machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though
   5106 cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his
   5107 manufactured bow and retired.
   5108 
   5109 A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc.,
   5110 performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and
   5111 sat down flushed and happy.
   5112 
   5113 Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into
   5114 the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death"
   5115 speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the
   5116 middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under
   5117 him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the
   5118 house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than
   5119 its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom
   5120 struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak
   5121 attempt at applause, but it died early.
   5122 
   5123 "The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came
   5124 Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises,
   5125 and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The
   5126 prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions"
   5127 by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of
   5128 the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with
   5129 dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to
   5130 "expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been
   5131 illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their
   5132 grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line
   5133 clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other
   5134 Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of
   5135 Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted";
   5136 "Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc.
   5137 
   5138 A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted
   5139 melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language";
   5140 another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words
   5141 and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that
   5142 conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable
   5143 sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one
   5144 of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort
   5145 was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and
   5146 religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring
   5147 insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the
   5148 banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient
   5149 to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps.
   5150 There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel
   5151 obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find
   5152 that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in
   5153 the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But
   5154 enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable.
   5155 
   5156 Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was
   5157 read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can
   5158 endure an extract from it:
   5159 
   5160   "In the common walks of life, with what delightful
   5161    emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some
   5162    anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy
   5163    sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the
   5164    voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the
   5165    festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her
   5166    graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling
   5167    through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is
   5168    brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly.
   5169 
   5170   "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by,
   5171    and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into
   5172    the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright
   5173    dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to
   5174    her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming
   5175    than the last. But after a while she finds that
   5176    beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the
   5177    flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates
   5178    harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its
   5179    charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart,
   5180    she turns away with the conviction that earthly
   5181    pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!"
   5182 
   5183 And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to
   5184 time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How
   5185 sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed
   5186 with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic.
   5187 
   5188 Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting"
   5189 paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two
   5190 stanzas of it will do:
   5191 
   5192    "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA
   5193 
   5194    "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well!
   5195       But yet for a while do I leave thee now!
   5196     Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell,
   5197       And burning recollections throng my brow!
   5198     For I have wandered through thy flowery woods;
   5199       Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream;
   5200     Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods,
   5201       And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam.
   5202 
   5203    "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart,
   5204       Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes;
   5205     'Tis from no stranger land I now must part,
   5206       'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs.
   5207     Welcome and home were mine within this State,
   5208       Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me
   5209     And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete,
   5210       When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!"
   5211 
   5212 There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was
   5213 very satisfactory, nevertheless.
   5214 
   5215 Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young
   5216 lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and
   5217 began to read in a measured, solemn tone:
   5218 
   5219   "A VISION
   5220 
   5221    "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the
   5222    throne on high not a single star quivered; but
   5223    the deep intonations of the heavy thunder
   5224    constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the
   5225    terrific lightning revelled in angry mood
   5226    through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming
   5227    to scorn the power exerted over its terror by
   5228    the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous
   5229    winds unanimously came forth from their mystic
   5230    homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by
   5231    their aid the wildness of the scene.
   5232 
   5233    "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human
   5234    sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof,
   5235 
   5236    "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter
   5237    and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss
   5238    in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of
   5239    those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks
   5240    of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a
   5241    queen of beauty unadorned save by her own
   5242    transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it
   5243    failed to make even a sound, and but for the
   5244    magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as
   5245    other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided
   5246    away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness
   5247    rested upon her features, like icy tears upon
   5248    the robe of December, as she pointed to the
   5249    contending elements without, and bade me contemplate
   5250    the two beings presented."
   5251 
   5252 This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with
   5253 a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took
   5254 the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest
   5255 effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the
   5256 prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it
   5257 was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that
   5258 Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it.
   5259 
   5260 It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in
   5261 which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience
   5262 referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average.
   5263 
   5264 Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair
   5265 aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of
   5266 America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he
   5267 made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered
   5268 titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set
   5269 himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only
   5270 distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced.
   5271 He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not
   5272 to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon
   5273 him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it
   5274 even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above,
   5275 pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle
   5276 came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag
   5277 tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly
   5278 descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung
   5279 downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher
   5280 and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's
   5281 head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her
   5282 desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an
   5283 instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did
   5284 blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy
   5285 had GILDED it!
   5286 
   5287 That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come.
   5288 
   5289    NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in
   5290    this chapter are taken without alteration from a
   5291    volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western
   5292    Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after
   5293    the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much
   5294    happier than any mere imitations could be.
   5295 
   5296 
   5297 
   5298 CHAPTER XXII
   5299 
   5300 TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by
   5301 the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from
   5302 smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he
   5303 found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the
   5304 surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very
   5305 thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and
   5306 swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a
   5307 chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing
   5308 from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up
   5309 --gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and
   5310 fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was
   5311 apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since
   5312 he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned
   5313 about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his
   5314 hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia
   5315 and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most
   5316 discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the
   5317 mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of
   5318 injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the
   5319 Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never
   5320 trust a man like that again.
   5321 
   5322 The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated
   5323 to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however
   5324 --there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found
   5325 to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could,
   5326 took the desire away, and the charm of it.
   5327 
   5328 Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning
   5329 to hang a little heavily on his hands.
   5330 
   5331 He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so
   5332 he abandoned it.
   5333 
   5334 The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a
   5335 sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were
   5336 happy for two days.
   5337 
   5338 Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained
   5339 hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in
   5340 the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States
   5341 Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not
   5342 twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it.
   5343 
   5344 A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in
   5345 tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for
   5346 girls--and then circusing was abandoned.
   5347 
   5348 A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the
   5349 village duller and drearier than ever.
   5350 
   5351 There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so
   5352 delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder.
   5353 
   5354 Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her
   5355 parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere.
   5356 
   5357 The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very
   5358 cancer for permanency and pain.
   5359 
   5360 Then came the measles.
   5361 
   5362 During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its
   5363 happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got
   5364 upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change
   5365 had come over everything and every creature. There had been a
   5366 "revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but
   5367 even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the
   5368 sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him
   5369 everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly
   5370 away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him
   5371 visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who
   5372 called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a
   5373 warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression;
   5374 and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of
   5375 Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his
   5376 heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all
   5377 the town was lost, forever and forever.
   5378 
   5379 And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain,
   5380 awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his
   5381 head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his
   5382 doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was
   5383 about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above
   5384 to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might
   5385 have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a
   5386 battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the
   5387 getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf
   5388 from under an insect like himself.
   5389 
   5390 By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its
   5391 object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His
   5392 second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms.
   5393 
   5394 The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks
   5395 he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad
   5396 at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how
   5397 lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted
   5398 listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a
   5399 juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her
   5400 victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a
   5401 stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse.
   5402 
   5403 
   5404 
   5405 CHAPTER XXIII
   5406 
   5407 AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder
   5408 trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village
   5409 talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to
   5410 the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and
   5411 fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his
   5412 hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of
   5413 knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be
   5414 comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver
   5415 all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him.
   5416 It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to
   5417 divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he
   5418 wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet.
   5419 
   5420 "Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?"
   5421 
   5422 "'Bout what?"
   5423 
   5424 "You know what."
   5425 
   5426 "Oh--'course I haven't."
   5427 
   5428 "Never a word?"
   5429 
   5430 "Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?"
   5431 
   5432 "Well, I was afeard."
   5433 
   5434 "Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out.
   5435 YOU know that."
   5436 
   5437 Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause:
   5438 
   5439 "Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?"
   5440 
   5441 "Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me
   5442 they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way."
   5443 
   5444 "Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep
   5445 mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer."
   5446 
   5447 "I'm agreed."
   5448 
   5449 So they swore again with dread solemnities.
   5450 
   5451 "What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it."
   5452 
   5453 "Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the
   5454 time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers."
   5455 
   5456 "That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner.
   5457 Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?"
   5458 
   5459 "Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't
   5460 ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money
   5461 to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do
   5462 that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of
   5463 good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two;
   5464 and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck."
   5465 
   5466 "Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my
   5467 line. I wish we could get him out of there."
   5468 
   5469 "My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any
   5470 good; they'd ketch him again."
   5471 
   5472 "Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the
   5473 dickens when he never done--that."
   5474 
   5475 "I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking
   5476 villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before."
   5477 
   5478 "Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he
   5479 was to get free they'd lynch him."
   5480 
   5481 "And they'd do it, too."
   5482 
   5483 The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the
   5484 twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood
   5485 of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that
   5486 something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But
   5487 nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in
   5488 this luckless captive.
   5489 
   5490 The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating
   5491 and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor
   5492 and there were no guards.
   5493 
   5494 His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences
   5495 before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and
   5496 treacherous to the last degree when Potter said:
   5497 
   5498 "You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this
   5499 town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I,
   5500 'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the
   5501 good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've
   5502 all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck
   5503 don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well,
   5504 boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the
   5505 only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's
   5506 right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't
   5507 talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended
   5508 me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't
   5509 ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime
   5510 comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of
   5511 trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly
   5512 faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me
   5513 touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but
   5514 mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter
   5515 a power, and they'd help him more if they could."
   5516 
   5517 Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of
   5518 horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room,
   5519 drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself
   5520 to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously
   5521 avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same
   5522 dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his
   5523 ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably
   5524 heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more
   5525 relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the
   5526 village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and
   5527 unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the
   5528 jury's verdict would be.
   5529 
   5530 Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He
   5531 was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to
   5532 sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for
   5533 this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented
   5534 in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took
   5535 their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and
   5536 hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all
   5537 the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe,
   5538 stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and
   5539 the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings
   5540 among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These
   5541 details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation
   5542 that was as impressive as it was fascinating.
   5543 
   5544 Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter
   5545 washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder
   5546 was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some
   5547 further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said:
   5548 
   5549 "Take the witness."
   5550 
   5551 The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when
   5552 his own counsel said:
   5553 
   5554 "I have no questions to ask him."
   5555 
   5556 The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse.
   5557 Counsel for the prosecution said:
   5558 
   5559 "Take the witness."
   5560 
   5561 "I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied.
   5562 
   5563 A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's
   5564 possession.
   5565 
   5566 "Take the witness."
   5567 
   5568 Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience
   5569 began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his
   5570 client's life without an effort?
   5571 
   5572 Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when
   5573 brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the
   5574 stand without being cross-questioned.
   5575 
   5576 Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the
   5577 graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was
   5578 brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined
   5579 by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house
   5580 expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench.
   5581 Counsel for the prosecution now said:
   5582 
   5583 "By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we
   5584 have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question,
   5585 upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here."
   5586 
   5587 A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and
   5588 rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in
   5589 the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion
   5590 testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said:
   5591 
   5592 "Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we
   5593 foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed
   5594 while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium
   5595 produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that
   5596 plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!"
   5597 
   5598 A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even
   5599 excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest
   5600 upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked
   5601 wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered.
   5602 
   5603 "Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the
   5604 hour of midnight?"
   5605 
   5606 Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The
   5607 audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a
   5608 few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and
   5609 managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house
   5610 hear:
   5611 
   5612 "In the graveyard!"
   5613 
   5614 "A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--"
   5615 
   5616 "In the graveyard."
   5617 
   5618 A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face.
   5619 
   5620 "Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?"
   5621 
   5622 "Yes, sir."
   5623 
   5624 "Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?"
   5625 
   5626 "Near as I am to you."
   5627 
   5628 "Were you hidden, or not?"
   5629 
   5630 "I was hid."
   5631 
   5632 "Where?"
   5633 
   5634 "Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave."
   5635 
   5636 Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start.
   5637 
   5638 "Any one with you?"
   5639 
   5640 "Yes, sir. I went there with--"
   5641 
   5642 "Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We
   5643 will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with
   5644 you."
   5645 
   5646 Tom hesitated and looked confused.
   5647 
   5648 "Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always
   5649 respectable. What did you take there?"
   5650 
   5651 "Only a--a--dead cat."
   5652 
   5653 There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked.
   5654 
   5655 "We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us
   5656 everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything,
   5657 and don't be afraid."
   5658 
   5659 Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his
   5660 words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased
   5661 but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips
   5662 and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of
   5663 time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon
   5664 pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said:
   5665 
   5666 "--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell,
   5667 Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--"
   5668 
   5669 Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his
   5670 way through all opposers, and was gone!
   5671 
   5672 
   5673 
   5674 CHAPTER XXIV
   5675 
   5676 TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of
   5677 the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village
   5678 paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be
   5679 President, yet, if he escaped hanging.
   5680 
   5681 As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom
   5682 and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort
   5683 of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find
   5684 fault with it.
   5685 
   5686 Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights
   5687 were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always
   5688 with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to
   5689 stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of
   5690 wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer
   5691 the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid
   5692 that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding
   5693 Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court.
   5694 The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of
   5695 that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the
   5696 lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been
   5697 sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's
   5698 confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated.
   5699 
   5700 Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly
   5701 he wished he had sealed up his tongue.
   5702 
   5703 Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the
   5704 other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw
   5705 a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse.
   5706 
   5707 Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun
   5708 Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a
   5709 detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head,
   5710 looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of
   5711 that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you
   5712 can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got
   5713 through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before.
   5714 
   5715 The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened
   5716 weight of apprehension.
   5717 
   5718 
   5719 
   5720 CHAPTER XXV
   5721 
   5722 THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has
   5723 a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This
   5724 desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe
   5725 Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone
   5726 fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck
   5727 would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to
   5728 him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a
   5729 hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no
   5730 capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time
   5731 which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck.
   5732 
   5733 "Oh, most anywhere."
   5734 
   5735 "Why, is it hid all around?"
   5736 
   5737 "No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck
   5738 --sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a
   5739 limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but
   5740 mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses."
   5741 
   5742 "Who hides it?"
   5743 
   5744 "Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school
   5745 sup'rintendents?"
   5746 
   5747 "I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have
   5748 a good time."
   5749 
   5750 "So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and
   5751 leave it there."
   5752 
   5753 "Don't they come after it any more?"
   5754 
   5755 "No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or
   5756 else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by
   5757 and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the
   5758 marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's
   5759 mostly signs and hy'roglyphics."
   5760 
   5761 "Hyro--which?"
   5762 
   5763 "Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean
   5764 anything."
   5765 
   5766 "Have you got one of them papers, Tom?"
   5767 
   5768 "No."
   5769 
   5770 "Well then, how you going to find the marks?"
   5771 
   5772 "I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or
   5773 on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out.
   5774 Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again
   5775 some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch,
   5776 and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em."
   5777 
   5778 "Is it under all of them?"
   5779 
   5780 "How you talk! No!"
   5781 
   5782 "Then how you going to know which one to go for?"
   5783 
   5784 "Go for all of 'em!"
   5785 
   5786 "Why, Tom, it'll take all summer."
   5787 
   5788 "Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred
   5789 dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds.
   5790 How's that?"
   5791 
   5792 Huck's eyes glowed.
   5793 
   5794 "That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred
   5795 dollars and I don't want no di'monds."
   5796 
   5797 "All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some
   5798 of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's
   5799 worth six bits or a dollar."
   5800 
   5801 "No! Is that so?"
   5802 
   5803 "Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?"
   5804 
   5805 "Not as I remember."
   5806 
   5807 "Oh, kings have slathers of them."
   5808 
   5809 "Well, I don' know no kings, Tom."
   5810 
   5811 "I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft
   5812 of 'em hopping around."
   5813 
   5814 "Do they hop?"
   5815 
   5816 "Hop?--your granny! No!"
   5817 
   5818 "Well, what did you say they did, for?"
   5819 
   5820 "Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do
   5821 they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around,
   5822 you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard."
   5823 
   5824 "Richard? What's his other name?"
   5825 
   5826 "He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name."
   5827 
   5828 "No?"
   5829 
   5830 "But they don't."
   5831 
   5832 "Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king
   5833 and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you
   5834 going to dig first?"
   5835 
   5836 "Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the
   5837 hill t'other side of Still-House branch?"
   5838 
   5839 "I'm agreed."
   5840 
   5841 So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their
   5842 three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves
   5843 down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke.
   5844 
   5845 "I like this," said Tom.
   5846 
   5847 "So do I."
   5848 
   5849 "Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your
   5850 share?"
   5851 
   5852 "Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to
   5853 every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time."
   5854 
   5855 "Well, ain't you going to save any of it?"
   5856 
   5857 "Save it? What for?"
   5858 
   5859 "Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by."
   5860 
   5861 "Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some
   5862 day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd
   5863 clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?"
   5864 
   5865 "I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red
   5866 necktie and a bull pup, and get married."
   5867 
   5868 "Married!"
   5869 
   5870 "That's it."
   5871 
   5872 "Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind."
   5873 
   5874 "Wait--you'll see."
   5875 
   5876 "Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my
   5877 mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty
   5878 well."
   5879 
   5880 "That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight."
   5881 
   5882 "Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you
   5883 better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name
   5884 of the gal?"
   5885 
   5886 "It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl."
   5887 
   5888 "It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's
   5889 right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?"
   5890 
   5891 "I'll tell you some time--not now."
   5892 
   5893 "All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer
   5894 than ever."
   5895 
   5896 "No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and
   5897 we'll go to digging."
   5898 
   5899 They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled
   5900 another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said:
   5901 
   5902 "Do they always bury it as deep as this?"
   5903 
   5904 "Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the
   5905 right place."
   5906 
   5907 So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little,
   5908 but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some
   5909 time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from
   5910 his brow with his sleeve, and said:
   5911 
   5912 "Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?"
   5913 
   5914 "I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on
   5915 Cardiff Hill back of the widow's."
   5916 
   5917 "I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from
   5918 us, Tom? It's on her land."
   5919 
   5920 "SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one
   5921 of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference
   5922 whose land it's on."
   5923 
   5924 That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said:
   5925 
   5926 "Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?"
   5927 
   5928 "It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches
   5929 interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now."
   5930 
   5931 "Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime."
   5932 
   5933 "Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter
   5934 is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the
   5935 shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!"
   5936 
   5937 "Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now
   5938 hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way.
   5939 Can you get out?"
   5940 
   5941 "I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody
   5942 sees these holes they'll know in a minute what's here and they'll go
   5943 for it."
   5944 
   5945 "Well, I'll come around and maow to-night."
   5946 
   5947 "All right. Let's hide the tools in the bushes."
   5948 
   5949 The boys were there that night, about the appointed time. They sat in
   5950 the shadow waiting. It was a lonely place, and an hour made solemn by
   5951 old traditions. Spirits whispered in the rustling leaves, ghosts lurked
   5952 in the murky nooks, the deep baying of a hound floated up out of the
   5953 distance, an owl answered with his sepulchral note. The boys were
   5954 subdued by these solemnities, and talked little. By and by they judged
   5955 that twelve had come; they marked where the shadow fell, and began to
   5956 dig. Their hopes commenced to rise. Their interest grew stronger, and
   5957 their industry kept pace with it. The hole deepened and still deepened,
   5958 but every time their hearts jumped to hear the pick strike upon
   5959 something, they only suffered a new disappointment. It was only a stone
   5960 or a chunk. At last Tom said:
   5961 
   5962 "It ain't any use, Huck, we're wrong again."
   5963 
   5964 "Well, but we CAN'T be wrong. We spotted the shadder to a dot."
   5965 
   5966 "I know it, but then there's another thing."
   5967 
   5968 "What's that?".
   5969 
   5970 "Why, we only guessed at the time. Like enough it was too late or too
   5971 early."
   5972 
   5973 Huck dropped his shovel.
   5974 
   5975 "That's it," said he. "That's the very trouble. We got to give this
   5976 one up. We can't ever tell the right time, and besides this kind of
   5977 thing's too awful, here this time of night with witches and ghosts
   5978 a-fluttering around so. I feel as if something's behind me all the time;
   5979 and I'm afeard to turn around, becuz maybe there's others in front
   5980 a-waiting for a chance. I been creeping all over, ever since I got here."
   5981 
   5982 "Well, I've been pretty much so, too, Huck. They most always put in a
   5983 dead man when they bury a treasure under a tree, to look out for it."
   5984 
   5985 "Lordy!"
   5986 
   5987 "Yes, they do. I've always heard that."
   5988 
   5989 "Tom, I don't like to fool around much where there's dead people. A
   5990 body's bound to get into trouble with 'em, sure."
   5991 
   5992 "I don't like to stir 'em up, either. S'pose this one here was to
   5993 stick his skull out and say something!"
   5994 
   5995 "Don't Tom! It's awful."
   5996 
   5997 "Well, it just is. Huck, I don't feel comfortable a bit."
   5998 
   5999 "Say, Tom, let's give this place up, and try somewheres else."
   6000 
   6001 "All right, I reckon we better."
   6002 
   6003 "What'll it be?"
   6004 
   6005 Tom considered awhile; and then said:
   6006 
   6007 "The ha'nted house. That's it!"
   6008 
   6009 "Blame it, I don't like ha'nted houses, Tom. Why, they're a dern sight
   6010 worse'n dead people. Dead people might talk, maybe, but they don't come
   6011 sliding around in a shroud, when you ain't noticing, and peep over your
   6012 shoulder all of a sudden and grit their teeth, the way a ghost does. I
   6013 couldn't stand such a thing as that, Tom--nobody could."
   6014 
   6015 "Yes, but, Huck, ghosts don't travel around only at night. They won't
   6016 hender us from digging there in the daytime."
   6017 
   6018 "Well, that's so. But you know mighty well people don't go about that
   6019 ha'nted house in the day nor the night."
   6020 
   6021 "Well, that's mostly because they don't like to go where a man's been
   6022 murdered, anyway--but nothing's ever been seen around that house except
   6023 in the night--just some blue lights slipping by the windows--no regular
   6024 ghosts."
   6025 
   6026 "Well, where you see one of them blue lights flickering around, Tom,
   6027 you can bet there's a ghost mighty close behind it. It stands to
   6028 reason. Becuz you know that they don't anybody but ghosts use 'em."
   6029 
   6030 "Yes, that's so. But anyway they don't come around in the daytime, so
   6031 what's the use of our being afeard?"
   6032 
   6033 "Well, all right. We'll tackle the ha'nted house if you say so--but I
   6034 reckon it's taking chances."
   6035 
   6036 They had started down the hill by this time. There in the middle of
   6037 the moonlit valley below them stood the "ha'nted" house, utterly
   6038 isolated, its fences gone long ago, rank weeds smothering the very
   6039 doorsteps, the chimney crumbled to ruin, the window-sashes vacant, a
   6040 corner of the roof caved in. The boys gazed awhile, half expecting to
   6041 see a blue light flit past a window; then talking in a low tone, as
   6042 befitted the time and the circumstances, they struck far off to the
   6043 right, to give the haunted house a wide berth, and took their way
   6044 homeward through the woods that adorned the rearward side of Cardiff
   6045 Hill.
   6046 
   6047 
   6048 
   6049 CHAPTER XXVI
   6050 
   6051 ABOUT noon the next day the boys arrived at the dead tree; they had
   6052 come for their tools. Tom was impatient to go to the haunted house;
   6053 Huck was measurably so, also--but suddenly said:
   6054 
   6055 "Lookyhere, Tom, do you know what day it is?"
   6056 
   6057 Tom mentally ran over the days of the week, and then quickly lifted
   6058 his eyes with a startled look in them--
   6059 
   6060 "My! I never once thought of it, Huck!"
   6061 
   6062 "Well, I didn't neither, but all at once it popped onto me that it was
   6063 Friday."
   6064 
   6065 "Blame it, a body can't be too careful, Huck. We might 'a' got into an
   6066 awful scrape, tackling such a thing on a Friday."
   6067 
   6068 "MIGHT! Better say we WOULD! There's some lucky days, maybe, but
   6069 Friday ain't."
   6070 
   6071 "Any fool knows that. I don't reckon YOU was the first that found it
   6072 out, Huck."
   6073 
   6074 "Well, I never said I was, did I? And Friday ain't all, neither. I had
   6075 a rotten bad dream last night--dreampt about rats."
   6076 
   6077 "No! Sure sign of trouble. Did they fight?"
   6078 
   6079 "No."
   6080 
   6081 "Well, that's good, Huck. When they don't fight it's only a sign that
   6082 there's trouble around, you know. All we got to do is to look mighty
   6083 sharp and keep out of it. We'll drop this thing for to-day, and play.
   6084 Do you know Robin Hood, Huck?"
   6085 
   6086 "No. Who's Robin Hood?"
   6087 
   6088 "Why, he was one of the greatest men that was ever in England--and the
   6089 best. He was a robber."
   6090 
   6091 "Cracky, I wisht I was. Who did he rob?"
   6092 
   6093 "Only sheriffs and bishops and rich people and kings, and such like.
   6094 But he never bothered the poor. He loved 'em. He always divided up with
   6095 'em perfectly square."
   6096 
   6097 "Well, he must 'a' been a brick."
   6098 
   6099 "I bet you he was, Huck. Oh, he was the noblest man that ever was.
   6100 They ain't any such men now, I can tell you. He could lick any man in
   6101 England, with one hand tied behind him; and he could take his yew bow
   6102 and plug a ten-cent piece every time, a mile and a half."
   6103 
   6104 "What's a YEW bow?"
   6105 
   6106 "I don't know. It's some kind of a bow, of course. And if he hit that
   6107 dime only on the edge he would set down and cry--and curse. But we'll
   6108 play Robin Hood--it's nobby fun. I'll learn you."
   6109 
   6110 "I'm agreed."
   6111 
   6112 So they played Robin Hood all the afternoon, now and then casting a
   6113 yearning eye down upon the haunted house and passing a remark about the
   6114 morrow's prospects and possibilities there. As the sun began to sink
   6115 into the west they took their way homeward athwart the long shadows of
   6116 the trees and soon were buried from sight in the forests of Cardiff
   6117 Hill.
   6118 
   6119 On Saturday, shortly after noon, the boys were at the dead tree again.
   6120 They had a smoke and a chat in the shade, and then dug a little in
   6121 their last hole, not with great hope, but merely because Tom said there
   6122 were so many cases where people had given up a treasure after getting
   6123 down within six inches of it, and then somebody else had come along and
   6124 turned it up with a single thrust of a shovel. The thing failed this
   6125 time, however, so the boys shouldered their tools and went away feeling
   6126 that they had not trifled with fortune, but had fulfilled all the
   6127 requirements that belong to the business of treasure-hunting.
   6128 
   6129 When they reached the haunted house there was something so weird and
   6130 grisly about the dead silence that reigned there under the baking sun,
   6131 and something so depressing about the loneliness and desolation of the
   6132 place, that they were afraid, for a moment, to venture in. Then they
   6133 crept to the door and took a trembling peep. They saw a weed-grown,
   6134 floorless room, unplastered, an ancient fireplace, vacant windows, a
   6135 ruinous staircase; and here, there, and everywhere hung ragged and
   6136 abandoned cobwebs. They presently entered, softly, with quickened
   6137 pulses, talking in whispers, ears alert to catch the slightest sound,
   6138 and muscles tense and ready for instant retreat.
   6139 
   6140 In a little while familiarity modified their fears and they gave the
   6141 place a critical and interested examination, rather admiring their own
   6142 boldness, and wondering at it, too. Next they wanted to look up-stairs.
   6143 This was something like cutting off retreat, but they got to daring
   6144 each other, and of course there could be but one result--they threw
   6145 their tools into a corner and made the ascent. Up there were the same
   6146 signs of decay. In one corner they found a closet that promised
   6147 mystery, but the promise was a fraud--there was nothing in it. Their
   6148 courage was up now and well in hand. They were about to go down and
   6149 begin work when--
   6150 
   6151 "Sh!" said Tom.
   6152 
   6153 "What is it?" whispered Huck, blanching with fright.
   6154 
   6155 "Sh!... There!... Hear it?"
   6156 
   6157 "Yes!... Oh, my! Let's run!"
   6158 
   6159 "Keep still! Don't you budge! They're coming right toward the door."
   6160 
   6161 The boys stretched themselves upon the floor with their eyes to
   6162 knot-holes in the planking, and lay waiting, in a misery of fear.
   6163 
   6164 "They've stopped.... No--coming.... Here they are. Don't whisper
   6165 another word, Huck. My goodness, I wish I was out of this!"
   6166 
   6167 Two men entered. Each boy said to himself: "There's the old deaf and
   6168 dumb Spaniard that's been about town once or twice lately--never saw
   6169 t'other man before."
   6170 
   6171 "T'other" was a ragged, unkempt creature, with nothing very pleasant
   6172 in his face. The Spaniard was wrapped in a serape; he had bushy white
   6173 whiskers; long white hair flowed from under his sombrero, and he wore
   6174 green goggles. When they came in, "t'other" was talking in a low voice;
   6175 they sat down on the ground, facing the door, with their backs to the
   6176 wall, and the speaker continued his remarks. His manner became less
   6177 guarded and his words more distinct as he proceeded:
   6178 
   6179 "No," said he, "I've thought it all over, and I don't like it. It's
   6180 dangerous."
   6181 
   6182 "Dangerous!" grunted the "deaf and dumb" Spaniard--to the vast
   6183 surprise of the boys. "Milksop!"
   6184 
   6185 This voice made the boys gasp and quake. It was Injun Joe's! There was
   6186 silence for some time. Then Joe said:
   6187 
   6188 "What's any more dangerous than that job up yonder--but nothing's come
   6189 of it."
   6190 
   6191 "That's different. Away up the river so, and not another house about.
   6192 'Twon't ever be known that we tried, anyway, long as we didn't succeed."
   6193 
   6194 "Well, what's more dangerous than coming here in the daytime!--anybody
   6195 would suspicion us that saw us."
   6196 
   6197 "I know that. But there warn't any other place as handy after that
   6198 fool of a job. I want to quit this shanty. I wanted to yesterday, only
   6199 it warn't any use trying to stir out of here, with those infernal boys
   6200 playing over there on the hill right in full view."
   6201 
   6202 "Those infernal boys" quaked again under the inspiration of this
   6203 remark, and thought how lucky it was that they had remembered it was
   6204 Friday and concluded to wait a day. They wished in their hearts they
   6205 had waited a year.
   6206 
   6207 The two men got out some food and made a luncheon. After a long and
   6208 thoughtful silence, Injun Joe said:
   6209 
   6210 "Look here, lad--you go back up the river where you belong. Wait there
   6211 till you hear from me. I'll take the chances on dropping into this town
   6212 just once more, for a look. We'll do that 'dangerous' job after I've
   6213 spied around a little and think things look well for it. Then for
   6214 Texas! We'll leg it together!"
   6215 
   6216 This was satisfactory. Both men presently fell to yawning, and Injun
   6217 Joe said:
   6218 
   6219 "I'm dead for sleep! It's your turn to watch."
   6220 
   6221 He curled down in the weeds and soon began to snore. His comrade
   6222 stirred him once or twice and he became quiet. Presently the watcher
   6223 began to nod; his head drooped lower and lower, both men began to snore
   6224 now.
   6225 
   6226 The boys drew a long, grateful breath. Tom whispered:
   6227 
   6228 "Now's our chance--come!"
   6229 
   6230 Huck said:
   6231 
   6232 "I can't--I'd die if they was to wake."
   6233 
   6234 Tom urged--Huck held back. At last Tom rose slowly and softly, and
   6235 started alone. But the first step he made wrung such a hideous creak
   6236 from the crazy floor that he sank down almost dead with fright. He
   6237 never made a second attempt. The boys lay there counting the dragging
   6238 moments till it seemed to them that time must be done and eternity
   6239 growing gray; and then they were grateful to note that at last the sun
   6240 was setting.
   6241 
   6242 Now one snore ceased. Injun Joe sat up, stared around--smiled grimly
   6243 upon his comrade, whose head was drooping upon his knees--stirred him
   6244 up with his foot and said:
   6245 
   6246 "Here! YOU'RE a watchman, ain't you! All right, though--nothing's
   6247 happened."
   6248 
   6249 "My! have I been asleep?"
   6250 
   6251 "Oh, partly, partly. Nearly time for us to be moving, pard. What'll we
   6252 do with what little swag we've got left?"
   6253 
   6254 "I don't know--leave it here as we've always done, I reckon. No use to
   6255 take it away till we start south. Six hundred and fifty in silver's
   6256 something to carry."
   6257 
   6258 "Well--all right--it won't matter to come here once more."
   6259 
   6260 "No--but I'd say come in the night as we used to do--it's better."
   6261 
   6262 "Yes: but look here; it may be a good while before I get the right
   6263 chance at that job; accidents might happen; 'tain't in such a very good
   6264 place; we'll just regularly bury it--and bury it deep."
   6265 
   6266 "Good idea," said the comrade, who walked across the room, knelt down,
   6267 raised one of the rearward hearth-stones and took out a bag that
   6268 jingled pleasantly. He subtracted from it twenty or thirty dollars for
   6269 himself and as much for Injun Joe, and passed the bag to the latter,
   6270 who was on his knees in the corner, now, digging with his bowie-knife.
   6271 
   6272 The boys forgot all their fears, all their miseries in an instant.
   6273 With gloating eyes they watched every movement. Luck!--the splendor of
   6274 it was beyond all imagination! Six hundred dollars was money enough to
   6275 make half a dozen boys rich! Here was treasure-hunting under the
   6276 happiest auspices--there would not be any bothersome uncertainty as to
   6277 where to dig. They nudged each other every moment--eloquent nudges and
   6278 easily understood, for they simply meant--"Oh, but ain't you glad NOW
   6279 we're here!"
   6280 
   6281 Joe's knife struck upon something.
   6282 
   6283 "Hello!" said he.
   6284 
   6285 "What is it?" said his comrade.
   6286 
   6287 "Half-rotten plank--no, it's a box, I believe. Here--bear a hand and
   6288 we'll see what it's here for. Never mind, I've broke a hole."
   6289 
   6290 He reached his hand in and drew it out--
   6291 
   6292 "Man, it's money!"
   6293 
   6294 The two men examined the handful of coins. They were gold. The boys
   6295 above were as excited as themselves, and as delighted.
   6296 
   6297 Joe's comrade said:
   6298 
   6299 "We'll make quick work of this. There's an old rusty pick over amongst
   6300 the weeds in the corner the other side of the fireplace--I saw it a
   6301 minute ago."
   6302 
   6303 He ran and brought the boys' pick and shovel. Injun Joe took the pick,
   6304 looked it over critically, shook his head, muttered something to
   6305 himself, and then began to use it. The box was soon unearthed. It was
   6306 not very large; it was iron bound and had been very strong before the
   6307 slow years had injured it. The men contemplated the treasure awhile in
   6308 blissful silence.
   6309 
   6310 "Pard, there's thousands of dollars here," said Injun Joe.
   6311 
   6312 "'Twas always said that Murrel's gang used to be around here one
   6313 summer," the stranger observed.
   6314 
   6315 "I know it," said Injun Joe; "and this looks like it, I should say."
   6316 
   6317 "Now you won't need to do that job."
   6318 
   6319 The half-breed frowned. Said he:
   6320 
   6321 "You don't know me. Least you don't know all about that thing. 'Tain't
   6322 robbery altogether--it's REVENGE!" and a wicked light flamed in his
   6323 eyes. "I'll need your help in it. When it's finished--then Texas. Go
   6324 home to your Nance and your kids, and stand by till you hear from me."
   6325 
   6326 "Well--if you say so; what'll we do with this--bury it again?"
   6327 
   6328 "Yes. [Ravishing delight overhead.] NO! by the great Sachem, no!
   6329 [Profound distress overhead.] I'd nearly forgot. That pick had fresh
   6330 earth on it! [The boys were sick with terror in a moment.] What
   6331 business has a pick and a shovel here? What business with fresh earth
   6332 on them? Who brought them here--and where are they gone? Have you heard
   6333 anybody?--seen anybody? What! bury it again and leave them to come and
   6334 see the ground disturbed? Not exactly--not exactly. We'll take it to my
   6335 den."
   6336 
   6337 "Why, of course! Might have thought of that before. You mean Number
   6338 One?"
   6339 
   6340 "No--Number Two--under the cross. The other place is bad--too common."
   6341 
   6342 "All right. It's nearly dark enough to start."
   6343 
   6344 Injun Joe got up and went about from window to window cautiously
   6345 peeping out. Presently he said:
   6346 
   6347 "Who could have brought those tools here? Do you reckon they can be
   6348 up-stairs?"
   6349 
   6350 The boys' breath forsook them. Injun Joe put his hand on his knife,
   6351 halted a moment, undecided, and then turned toward the stairway. The
   6352 boys thought of the closet, but their strength was gone. The steps came
   6353 creaking up the stairs--the intolerable distress of the situation woke
   6354 the stricken resolution of the lads--they were about to spring for the
   6355 closet, when there was a crash of rotten timbers and Injun Joe landed
   6356 on the ground amid the debris of the ruined stairway. He gathered
   6357 himself up cursing, and his comrade said:
   6358 
   6359 "Now what's the use of all that? If it's anybody, and they're up
   6360 there, let them STAY there--who cares? If they want to jump down, now,
   6361 and get into trouble, who objects? It will be dark in fifteen minutes
   6362 --and then let them follow us if they want to. I'm willing. In my
   6363 opinion, whoever hove those things in here caught a sight of us and
   6364 took us for ghosts or devils or something. I'll bet they're running
   6365 yet."
   6366 
   6367 Joe grumbled awhile; then he agreed with his friend that what daylight
   6368 was left ought to be economized in getting things ready for leaving.
   6369 Shortly afterward they slipped out of the house in the deepening
   6370 twilight, and moved toward the river with their precious box.
   6371 
   6372 Tom and Huck rose up, weak but vastly relieved, and stared after them
   6373 through the chinks between the logs of the house. Follow? Not they.
   6374 They were content to reach ground again without broken necks, and take
   6375 the townward track over the hill. They did not talk much. They were too
   6376 much absorbed in hating themselves--hating the ill luck that made them
   6377 take the spade and the pick there. But for that, Injun Joe never would
   6378 have suspected. He would have hidden the silver with the gold to wait
   6379 there till his "revenge" was satisfied, and then he would have had the
   6380 misfortune to find that money turn up missing. Bitter, bitter luck that
   6381 the tools were ever brought there!
   6382 
   6383 They resolved to keep a lookout for that Spaniard when he should come
   6384 to town spying out for chances to do his revengeful job, and follow him
   6385 to "Number Two," wherever that might be. Then a ghastly thought
   6386 occurred to Tom.
   6387 
   6388 "Revenge? What if he means US, Huck!"
   6389 
   6390 "Oh, don't!" said Huck, nearly fainting.
   6391 
   6392 They talked it all over, and as they entered town they agreed to
   6393 believe that he might possibly mean somebody else--at least that he
   6394 might at least mean nobody but Tom, since only Tom had testified.
   6395 
   6396 Very, very small comfort it was to Tom to be alone in danger! Company
   6397 would be a palpable improvement, he thought.
   6398 
   6399 
   6400 
   6401 CHAPTER XXVII
   6402 
   6403 THE adventure of the day mightily tormented Tom's dreams that night.
   6404 Four times he had his hands on that rich treasure and four times it
   6405 wasted to nothingness in his fingers as sleep forsook him and
   6406 wakefulness brought back the hard reality of his misfortune. As he lay
   6407 in the early morning recalling the incidents of his great adventure, he
   6408 noticed that they seemed curiously subdued and far away--somewhat as if
   6409 they had happened in another world, or in a time long gone by. Then it
   6410 occurred to him that the great adventure itself must be a dream! There
   6411 was one very strong argument in favor of this idea--namely, that the
   6412 quantity of coin he had seen was too vast to be real. He had never seen
   6413 as much as fifty dollars in one mass before, and he was like all boys
   6414 of his age and station in life, in that he imagined that all references
   6415 to "hundreds" and "thousands" were mere fanciful forms of speech, and
   6416 that no such sums really existed in the world. He never had supposed
   6417 for a moment that so large a sum as a hundred dollars was to be found
   6418 in actual money in any one's possession. If his notions of hidden
   6419 treasure had been analyzed, they would have been found to consist of a
   6420 handful of real dimes and a bushel of vague, splendid, ungraspable
   6421 dollars.
   6422 
   6423 But the incidents of his adventure grew sensibly sharper and clearer
   6424 under the attrition of thinking them over, and so he presently found
   6425 himself leaning to the impression that the thing might not have been a
   6426 dream, after all. This uncertainty must be swept away. He would snatch
   6427 a hurried breakfast and go and find Huck. Huck was sitting on the
   6428 gunwale of a flatboat, listlessly dangling his feet in the water and
   6429 looking very melancholy. Tom concluded to let Huck lead up to the
   6430 subject. If he did not do it, then the adventure would be proved to
   6431 have been only a dream.
   6432 
   6433 "Hello, Huck!"
   6434 
   6435 "Hello, yourself."
   6436 
   6437 Silence, for a minute.
   6438 
   6439 "Tom, if we'd 'a' left the blame tools at the dead tree, we'd 'a' got
   6440 the money. Oh, ain't it awful!"
   6441 
   6442 "'Tain't a dream, then, 'tain't a dream! Somehow I most wish it was.
   6443 Dog'd if I don't, Huck."
   6444 
   6445 "What ain't a dream?"
   6446 
   6447 "Oh, that thing yesterday. I been half thinking it was."
   6448 
   6449 "Dream! If them stairs hadn't broke down you'd 'a' seen how much dream
   6450 it was! I've had dreams enough all night--with that patch-eyed Spanish
   6451 devil going for me all through 'em--rot him!"
   6452 
   6453 "No, not rot him. FIND him! Track the money!"
   6454 
   6455 "Tom, we'll never find him. A feller don't have only one chance for
   6456 such a pile--and that one's lost. I'd feel mighty shaky if I was to see
   6457 him, anyway."
   6458 
   6459 "Well, so'd I; but I'd like to see him, anyway--and track him out--to
   6460 his Number Two."
   6461 
   6462 "Number Two--yes, that's it. I been thinking 'bout that. But I can't
   6463 make nothing out of it. What do you reckon it is?"
   6464 
   6465 "I dono. It's too deep. Say, Huck--maybe it's the number of a house!"
   6466 
   6467 "Goody!... No, Tom, that ain't it. If it is, it ain't in this
   6468 one-horse town. They ain't no numbers here."
   6469 
   6470 "Well, that's so. Lemme think a minute. Here--it's the number of a
   6471 room--in a tavern, you know!"
   6472 
   6473 "Oh, that's the trick! They ain't only two taverns. We can find out
   6474 quick."
   6475 
   6476 "You stay here, Huck, till I come."
   6477 
   6478 Tom was off at once. He did not care to have Huck's company in public
   6479 places. He was gone half an hour. He found that in the best tavern, No.
   6480 2 had long been occupied by a young lawyer, and was still so occupied.
   6481 In the less ostentatious house, No. 2 was a mystery. The
   6482 tavern-keeper's young son said it was kept locked all the time, and he
   6483 never saw anybody go into it or come out of it except at night; he did
   6484 not know any particular reason for this state of things; had had some
   6485 little curiosity, but it was rather feeble; had made the most of the
   6486 mystery by entertaining himself with the idea that that room was
   6487 "ha'nted"; had noticed that there was a light in there the night before.
   6488 
   6489 "That's what I've found out, Huck. I reckon that's the very No. 2
   6490 we're after."
   6491 
   6492 "I reckon it is, Tom. Now what you going to do?"
   6493 
   6494 "Lemme think."
   6495 
   6496 Tom thought a long time. Then he said:
   6497 
   6498 "I'll tell you. The back door of that No. 2 is the door that comes out
   6499 into that little close alley between the tavern and the old rattle trap
   6500 of a brick store. Now you get hold of all the door-keys you can find,
   6501 and I'll nip all of auntie's, and the first dark night we'll go there
   6502 and try 'em. And mind you, keep a lookout for Injun Joe, because he
   6503 said he was going to drop into town and spy around once more for a
   6504 chance to get his revenge. If you see him, you just follow him; and if
   6505 he don't go to that No. 2, that ain't the place."
   6506 
   6507 "Lordy, I don't want to foller him by myself!"
   6508 
   6509 "Why, it'll be night, sure. He mightn't ever see you--and if he did,
   6510 maybe he'd never think anything."
   6511 
   6512 "Well, if it's pretty dark I reckon I'll track him. I dono--I dono.
   6513 I'll try."
   6514 
   6515 "You bet I'll follow him, if it's dark, Huck. Why, he might 'a' found
   6516 out he couldn't get his revenge, and be going right after that money."
   6517 
   6518 "It's so, Tom, it's so. I'll foller him; I will, by jingoes!"
   6519 
   6520 "Now you're TALKING! Don't you ever weaken, Huck, and I won't."
   6521 
   6522 
   6523 
   6524 CHAPTER XXVIII
   6525 
   6526 THAT night Tom and Huck were ready for their adventure. They hung
   6527 about the neighborhood of the tavern until after nine, one watching the
   6528 alley at a distance and the other the tavern door. Nobody entered the
   6529 alley or left it; nobody resembling the Spaniard entered or left the
   6530 tavern door. The night promised to be a fair one; so Tom went home with
   6531 the understanding that if a considerable degree of darkness came on,
   6532 Huck was to come and "maow," whereupon he would slip out and try the
   6533 keys. But the night remained clear, and Huck closed his watch and
   6534 retired to bed in an empty sugar hogshead about twelve.
   6535 
   6536 Tuesday the boys had the same ill luck. Also Wednesday. But Thursday
   6537 night promised better. Tom slipped out in good season with his aunt's
   6538 old tin lantern, and a large towel to blindfold it with. He hid the
   6539 lantern in Huck's sugar hogshead and the watch began. An hour before
   6540 midnight the tavern closed up and its lights (the only ones
   6541 thereabouts) were put out. No Spaniard had been seen. Nobody had
   6542 entered or left the alley. Everything was auspicious. The blackness of
   6543 darkness reigned, the perfect stillness was interrupted only by
   6544 occasional mutterings of distant thunder.
   6545 
   6546 Tom got his lantern, lit it in the hogshead, wrapped it closely in the
   6547 towel, and the two adventurers crept in the gloom toward the tavern.
   6548 Huck stood sentry and Tom felt his way into the alley. Then there was a
   6549 season of waiting anxiety that weighed upon Huck's spirits like a
   6550 mountain. He began to wish he could see a flash from the lantern--it
   6551 would frighten him, but it would at least tell him that Tom was alive
   6552 yet. It seemed hours since Tom had disappeared. Surely he must have
   6553 fainted; maybe he was dead; maybe his heart had burst under terror and
   6554 excitement. In his uneasiness Huck found himself drawing closer and
   6555 closer to the alley; fearing all sorts of dreadful things, and
   6556 momentarily expecting some catastrophe to happen that would take away
   6557 his breath. There was not much to take away, for he seemed only able to
   6558 inhale it by thimblefuls, and his heart would soon wear itself out, the
   6559 way it was beating. Suddenly there was a flash of light and Tom came
   6560 tearing by him: "Run!" said he; "run, for your life!"
   6561 
   6562 He needn't have repeated it; once was enough; Huck was making thirty
   6563 or forty miles an hour before the repetition was uttered. The boys
   6564 never stopped till they reached the shed of a deserted slaughter-house
   6565 at the lower end of the village. Just as they got within its shelter
   6566 the storm burst and the rain poured down. As soon as Tom got his breath
   6567 he said:
   6568 
   6569 "Huck, it was awful! I tried two of the keys, just as soft as I could;
   6570 but they seemed to make such a power of racket that I couldn't hardly
   6571 get my breath I was so scared. They wouldn't turn in the lock, either.
   6572 Well, without noticing what I was doing, I took hold of the knob, and
   6573 open comes the door! It warn't locked! I hopped in, and shook off the
   6574 towel, and, GREAT CAESAR'S GHOST!"
   6575 
   6576 "What!--what'd you see, Tom?"
   6577 
   6578 "Huck, I most stepped onto Injun Joe's hand!"
   6579 
   6580 "No!"
   6581 
   6582 "Yes! He was lying there, sound asleep on the floor, with his old
   6583 patch on his eye and his arms spread out."
   6584 
   6585 "Lordy, what did you do? Did he wake up?"
   6586 
   6587 "No, never budged. Drunk, I reckon. I just grabbed that towel and
   6588 started!"
   6589 
   6590 "I'd never 'a' thought of the towel, I bet!"
   6591 
   6592 "Well, I would. My aunt would make me mighty sick if I lost it."
   6593 
   6594 "Say, Tom, did you see that box?"
   6595 
   6596 "Huck, I didn't wait to look around. I didn't see the box, I didn't
   6597 see the cross. I didn't see anything but a bottle and a tin cup on the
   6598 floor by Injun Joe; yes, I saw two barrels and lots more bottles in the
   6599 room. Don't you see, now, what's the matter with that ha'nted room?"
   6600 
   6601 "How?"
   6602 
   6603 "Why, it's ha'nted with whiskey! Maybe ALL the Temperance Taverns have
   6604 got a ha'nted room, hey, Huck?"
   6605 
   6606 "Well, I reckon maybe that's so. Who'd 'a' thought such a thing? But
   6607 say, Tom, now's a mighty good time to get that box, if Injun Joe's
   6608 drunk."
   6609 
   6610 "It is, that! You try it!"
   6611 
   6612 Huck shuddered.
   6613 
   6614 "Well, no--I reckon not."
   6615 
   6616 "And I reckon not, Huck. Only one bottle alongside of Injun Joe ain't
   6617 enough. If there'd been three, he'd be drunk enough and I'd do it."
   6618 
   6619 There was a long pause for reflection, and then Tom said:
   6620 
   6621 "Lookyhere, Huck, less not try that thing any more till we know Injun
   6622 Joe's not in there. It's too scary. Now, if we watch every night, we'll
   6623 be dead sure to see him go out, some time or other, and then we'll
   6624 snatch that box quicker'n lightning."
   6625 
   6626 "Well, I'm agreed. I'll watch the whole night long, and I'll do it
   6627 every night, too, if you'll do the other part of the job."
   6628 
   6629 "All right, I will. All you got to do is to trot up Hooper Street a
   6630 block and maow--and if I'm asleep, you throw some gravel at the window
   6631 and that'll fetch me."
   6632 
   6633 "Agreed, and good as wheat!"
   6634 
   6635 "Now, Huck, the storm's over, and I'll go home. It'll begin to be
   6636 daylight in a couple of hours. You go back and watch that long, will
   6637 you?"
   6638 
   6639 "I said I would, Tom, and I will. I'll ha'nt that tavern every night
   6640 for a year! I'll sleep all day and I'll stand watch all night."
   6641 
   6642 "That's all right. Now, where you going to sleep?"
   6643 
   6644 "In Ben Rogers' hayloft. He lets me, and so does his pap's nigger man,
   6645 Uncle Jake. I tote water for Uncle Jake whenever he wants me to, and
   6646 any time I ask him he gives me a little something to eat if he can
   6647 spare it. That's a mighty good nigger, Tom. He likes me, becuz I don't
   6648 ever act as if I was above him. Sometime I've set right down and eat
   6649 WITH him. But you needn't tell that. A body's got to do things when
   6650 he's awful hungry he wouldn't want to do as a steady thing."
   6651 
   6652 "Well, if I don't want you in the daytime, I'll let you sleep. I won't
   6653 come bothering around. Any time you see something's up, in the night,
   6654 just skip right around and maow."
   6655 
   6656 
   6657 
   6658 CHAPTER XXIX
   6659 
   6660 THE first thing Tom heard on Friday morning was a glad piece of news
   6661 --Judge Thatcher's family had come back to town the night before. Both
   6662 Injun Joe and the treasure sunk into secondary importance for a moment,
   6663 and Becky took the chief place in the boy's interest. He saw her and
   6664 they had an exhausting good time playing "hi-spy" and "gully-keeper"
   6665 with a crowd of their school-mates. The day was completed and crowned
   6666 in a peculiarly satisfactory way: Becky teased her mother to appoint
   6667 the next day for the long-promised and long-delayed picnic, and she
   6668 consented. The child's delight was boundless; and Tom's not more
   6669 moderate. The invitations were sent out before sunset, and straightway
   6670 the young folks of the village were thrown into a fever of preparation
   6671 and pleasurable anticipation. Tom's excitement enabled him to keep
   6672 awake until a pretty late hour, and he had good hopes of hearing Huck's
   6673 "maow," and of having his treasure to astonish Becky and the picnickers
   6674 with, next day; but he was disappointed. No signal came that night.
   6675 
   6676 Morning came, eventually, and by ten or eleven o'clock a giddy and
   6677 rollicking company were gathered at Judge Thatcher's, and everything
   6678 was ready for a start. It was not the custom for elderly people to mar
   6679 the picnics with their presence. The children were considered safe
   6680 enough under the wings of a few young ladies of eighteen and a few
   6681 young gentlemen of twenty-three or thereabouts. The old steam ferryboat
   6682 was chartered for the occasion; presently the gay throng filed up the
   6683 main street laden with provision-baskets. Sid was sick and had to miss
   6684 the fun; Mary remained at home to entertain him. The last thing Mrs.
   6685 Thatcher said to Becky, was:
   6686 
   6687 "You'll not get back till late. Perhaps you'd better stay all night
   6688 with some of the girls that live near the ferry-landing, child."
   6689 
   6690 "Then I'll stay with Susy Harper, mamma."
   6691 
   6692 "Very well. And mind and behave yourself and don't be any trouble."
   6693 
   6694 Presently, as they tripped along, Tom said to Becky:
   6695 
   6696 "Say--I'll tell you what we'll do. 'Stead of going to Joe Harper's
   6697 we'll climb right up the hill and stop at the Widow Douglas'. She'll
   6698 have ice-cream! She has it most every day--dead loads of it. And she'll
   6699 be awful glad to have us."
   6700 
   6701 "Oh, that will be fun!"
   6702 
   6703 Then Becky reflected a moment and said:
   6704 
   6705 "But what will mamma say?"
   6706 
   6707 "How'll she ever know?"
   6708 
   6709 The girl turned the idea over in her mind, and said reluctantly:
   6710 
   6711 "I reckon it's wrong--but--"
   6712 
   6713 "But shucks! Your mother won't know, and so what's the harm? All she
   6714 wants is that you'll be safe; and I bet you she'd 'a' said go there if
   6715 she'd 'a' thought of it. I know she would!"
   6716 
   6717 The Widow Douglas' splendid hospitality was a tempting bait. It and
   6718 Tom's persuasions presently carried the day. So it was decided to say
   6719 nothing anybody about the night's programme. Presently it occurred to
   6720 Tom that maybe Huck might come this very night and give the signal. The
   6721 thought took a deal of the spirit out of his anticipations. Still he
   6722 could not bear to give up the fun at Widow Douglas'. And why should he
   6723 give it up, he reasoned--the signal did not come the night before, so
   6724 why should it be any more likely to come to-night? The sure fun of the
   6725 evening outweighed the uncertain treasure; and, boy-like, he determined
   6726 to yield to the stronger inclination and not allow himself to think of
   6727 the box of money another time that day.
   6728 
   6729 Three miles below town the ferryboat stopped at the mouth of a woody
   6730 hollow and tied up. The crowd swarmed ashore and soon the forest
   6731 distances and craggy heights echoed far and near with shoutings and
   6732 laughter. All the different ways of getting hot and tired were gone
   6733 through with, and by-and-by the rovers straggled back to camp fortified
   6734 with responsible appetites, and then the destruction of the good things
   6735 began. After the feast there was a refreshing season of rest and chat
   6736 in the shade of spreading oaks. By-and-by somebody shouted:
   6737 
   6738 "Who's ready for the cave?"
   6739 
   6740 Everybody was. Bundles of candles were procured, and straightway there
   6741 was a general scamper up the hill. The mouth of the cave was up the
   6742 hillside--an opening shaped like a letter A. Its massive oaken door
   6743 stood unbarred. Within was a small chamber, chilly as an ice-house, and
   6744 walled by Nature with solid limestone that was dewy with a cold sweat.
   6745 It was romantic and mysterious to stand here in the deep gloom and look
   6746 out upon the green valley shining in the sun. But the impressiveness of
   6747 the situation quickly wore off, and the romping began again. The moment
   6748 a candle was lighted there was a general rush upon the owner of it; a
   6749 struggle and a gallant defence followed, but the candle was soon
   6750 knocked down or blown out, and then there was a glad clamor of laughter
   6751 and a new chase. But all things have an end. By-and-by the procession
   6752 went filing down the steep descent of the main avenue, the flickering
   6753 rank of lights dimly revealing the lofty walls of rock almost to their
   6754 point of junction sixty feet overhead. This main avenue was not more
   6755 than eight or ten feet wide. Every few steps other lofty and still
   6756 narrower crevices branched from it on either hand--for McDougal's cave
   6757 was but a vast labyrinth of crooked aisles that ran into each other and
   6758 out again and led nowhere. It was said that one might wander days and
   6759 nights together through its intricate tangle of rifts and chasms, and
   6760 never find the end of the cave; and that he might go down, and down,
   6761 and still down, into the earth, and it was just the same--labyrinth
   6762 under labyrinth, and no end to any of them. No man "knew" the cave.
   6763 That was an impossible thing. Most of the young men knew a portion of
   6764 it, and it was not customary to venture much beyond this known portion.
   6765 Tom Sawyer knew as much of the cave as any one.
   6766 
   6767 The procession moved along the main avenue some three-quarters of a
   6768 mile, and then groups and couples began to slip aside into branch
   6769 avenues, fly along the dismal corridors, and take each other by
   6770 surprise at points where the corridors joined again. Parties were able
   6771 to elude each other for the space of half an hour without going beyond
   6772 the "known" ground.
   6773 
   6774 By-and-by, one group after another came straggling back to the mouth
   6775 of the cave, panting, hilarious, smeared from head to foot with tallow
   6776 drippings, daubed with clay, and entirely delighted with the success of
   6777 the day. Then they were astonished to find that they had been taking no
   6778 note of time and that night was about at hand. The clanging bell had
   6779 been calling for half an hour. However, this sort of close to the day's
   6780 adventures was romantic and therefore satisfactory. When the ferryboat
   6781 with her wild freight pushed into the stream, nobody cared sixpence for
   6782 the wasted time but the captain of the craft.
   6783 
   6784 Huck was already upon his watch when the ferryboat's lights went
   6785 glinting past the wharf. He heard no noise on board, for the young
   6786 people were as subdued and still as people usually are who are nearly
   6787 tired to death. He wondered what boat it was, and why she did not stop
   6788 at the wharf--and then he dropped her out of his mind and put his
   6789 attention upon his business. The night was growing cloudy and dark. Ten
   6790 o'clock came, and the noise of vehicles ceased, scattered lights began
   6791 to wink out, all straggling foot-passengers disappeared, the village
   6792 betook itself to its slumbers and left the small watcher alone with the
   6793 silence and the ghosts. Eleven o'clock came, and the tavern lights were
   6794 put out; darkness everywhere, now. Huck waited what seemed a weary long
   6795 time, but nothing happened. His faith was weakening. Was there any use?
   6796 Was there really any use? Why not give it up and turn in?
   6797 
   6798 A noise fell upon his ear. He was all attention in an instant. The
   6799 alley door closed softly. He sprang to the corner of the brick store.
   6800 The next moment two men brushed by him, and one seemed to have
   6801 something under his arm. It must be that box! So they were going to
   6802 remove the treasure. Why call Tom now? It would be absurd--the men
   6803 would get away with the box and never be found again. No, he would
   6804 stick to their wake and follow them; he would trust to the darkness for
   6805 security from discovery. So communing with himself, Huck stepped out
   6806 and glided along behind the men, cat-like, with bare feet, allowing
   6807 them to keep just far enough ahead not to be invisible.
   6808 
   6809 They moved up the river street three blocks, then turned to the left
   6810 up a cross-street. They went straight ahead, then, until they came to
   6811 the path that led up Cardiff Hill; this they took. They passed by the
   6812 old Welshman's house, half-way up the hill, without hesitating, and
   6813 still climbed upward. Good, thought Huck, they will bury it in the old
   6814 quarry. But they never stopped at the quarry. They passed on, up the
   6815 summit. They plunged into the narrow path between the tall sumach
   6816 bushes, and were at once hidden in the gloom. Huck closed up and
   6817 shortened his distance, now, for they would never be able to see him.
   6818 He trotted along awhile; then slackened his pace, fearing he was
   6819 gaining too fast; moved on a piece, then stopped altogether; listened;
   6820 no sound; none, save that he seemed to hear the beating of his own
   6821 heart. The hooting of an owl came over the hill--ominous sound! But no
   6822 footsteps. Heavens, was everything lost! He was about to spring with
   6823 winged feet, when a man cleared his throat not four feet from him!
   6824 Huck's heart shot into his throat, but he swallowed it again; and then
   6825 he stood there shaking as if a dozen agues had taken charge of him at
   6826 once, and so weak that he thought he must surely fall to the ground. He
   6827 knew where he was. He knew he was within five steps of the stile
   6828 leading into Widow Douglas' grounds. Very well, he thought, let them
   6829 bury it there; it won't be hard to find.
   6830 
   6831 Now there was a voice--a very low voice--Injun Joe's:
   6832 
   6833 "Damn her, maybe she's got company--there's lights, late as it is."
   6834 
   6835 "I can't see any."
   6836 
   6837 This was that stranger's voice--the stranger of the haunted house. A
   6838 deadly chill went to Huck's heart--this, then, was the "revenge" job!
   6839 His thought was, to fly. Then he remembered that the Widow Douglas had
   6840 been kind to him more than once, and maybe these men were going to
   6841 murder her. He wished he dared venture to warn her; but he knew he
   6842 didn't dare--they might come and catch him. He thought all this and
   6843 more in the moment that elapsed between the stranger's remark and Injun
   6844 Joe's next--which was--
   6845 
   6846 "Because the bush is in your way. Now--this way--now you see, don't
   6847 you?"
   6848 
   6849 "Yes. Well, there IS company there, I reckon. Better give it up."
   6850 
   6851 "Give it up, and I just leaving this country forever! Give it up and
   6852 maybe never have another chance. I tell you again, as I've told you
   6853 before, I don't care for her swag--you may have it. But her husband was
   6854 rough on me--many times he was rough on me--and mainly he was the
   6855 justice of the peace that jugged me for a vagrant. And that ain't all.
   6856 It ain't a millionth part of it! He had me HORSEWHIPPED!--horsewhipped
   6857 in front of the jail, like a nigger!--with all the town looking on!
   6858 HORSEWHIPPED!--do you understand? He took advantage of me and died. But
   6859 I'll take it out of HER."
   6860 
   6861 "Oh, don't kill her! Don't do that!"
   6862 
   6863 "Kill? Who said anything about killing? I would kill HIM if he was
   6864 here; but not her. When you want to get revenge on a woman you don't
   6865 kill her--bosh! you go for her looks. You slit her nostrils--you notch
   6866 her ears like a sow!"
   6867 
   6868 "By God, that's--"
   6869 
   6870 "Keep your opinion to yourself! It will be safest for you. I'll tie
   6871 her to the bed. If she bleeds to death, is that my fault? I'll not cry,
   6872 if she does. My friend, you'll help me in this thing--for MY sake
   6873 --that's why you're here--I mightn't be able alone. If you flinch, I'll
   6874 kill you. Do you understand that? And if I have to kill you, I'll kill
   6875 her--and then I reckon nobody'll ever know much about who done this
   6876 business."
   6877 
   6878 "Well, if it's got to be done, let's get at it. The quicker the
   6879 better--I'm all in a shiver."
   6880 
   6881 "Do it NOW? And company there? Look here--I'll get suspicious of you,
   6882 first thing you know. No--we'll wait till the lights are out--there's
   6883 no hurry."
   6884 
   6885 Huck felt that a silence was going to ensue--a thing still more awful
   6886 than any amount of murderous talk; so he held his breath and stepped
   6887 gingerly back; planted his foot carefully and firmly, after balancing,
   6888 one-legged, in a precarious way and almost toppling over, first on one
   6889 side and then on the other. He took another step back, with the same
   6890 elaboration and the same risks; then another and another, and--a twig
   6891 snapped under his foot! His breath stopped and he listened. There was
   6892 no sound--the stillness was perfect. His gratitude was measureless. Now
   6893 he turned in his tracks, between the walls of sumach bushes--turned
   6894 himself as carefully as if he were a ship--and then stepped quickly but
   6895 cautiously along. When he emerged at the quarry he felt secure, and so
   6896 he picked up his nimble heels and flew. Down, down he sped, till he
   6897 reached the Welshman's. He banged at the door, and presently the heads
   6898 of the old man and his two stalwart sons were thrust from windows.
   6899 
   6900 "What's the row there? Who's banging? What do you want?"
   6901 
   6902 "Let me in--quick! I'll tell everything."
   6903 
   6904 "Why, who are you?"
   6905 
   6906 "Huckleberry Finn--quick, let me in!"
   6907 
   6908 "Huckleberry Finn, indeed! It ain't a name to open many doors, I
   6909 judge! But let him in, lads, and let's see what's the trouble."
   6910 
   6911 "Please don't ever tell I told you," were Huck's first words when he
   6912 got in. "Please don't--I'd be killed, sure--but the widow's been good
   6913 friends to me sometimes, and I want to tell--I WILL tell if you'll
   6914 promise you won't ever say it was me."
   6915 
   6916 "By George, he HAS got something to tell, or he wouldn't act so!"
   6917 exclaimed the old man; "out with it and nobody here'll ever tell, lad."
   6918 
   6919 Three minutes later the old man and his sons, well armed, were up the
   6920 hill, and just entering the sumach path on tiptoe, their weapons in
   6921 their hands. Huck accompanied them no further. He hid behind a great
   6922 bowlder and fell to listening. There was a lagging, anxious silence,
   6923 and then all of a sudden there was an explosion of firearms and a cry.
   6924 
   6925 Huck waited for no particulars. He sprang away and sped down the hill
   6926 as fast as his legs could carry him.
   6927 
   6928 
   6929 
   6930 CHAPTER XXX
   6931 
   6932 AS the earliest suspicion of dawn appeared on Sunday morning, Huck
   6933 came groping up the hill and rapped gently at the old Welshman's door.
   6934 The inmates were asleep, but it was a sleep that was set on a
   6935 hair-trigger, on account of the exciting episode of the night. A call
   6936 came from a window:
   6937 
   6938 "Who's there!"
   6939 
   6940 Huck's scared voice answered in a low tone:
   6941 
   6942 "Please let me in! It's only Huck Finn!"
   6943 
   6944 "It's a name that can open this door night or day, lad!--and welcome!"
   6945 
   6946 These were strange words to the vagabond boy's ears, and the
   6947 pleasantest he had ever heard. He could not recollect that the closing
   6948 word had ever been applied in his case before. The door was quickly
   6949 unlocked, and he entered. Huck was given a seat and the old man and his
   6950 brace of tall sons speedily dressed themselves.
   6951 
   6952 "Now, my boy, I hope you're good and hungry, because breakfast will be
   6953 ready as soon as the sun's up, and we'll have a piping hot one, too
   6954 --make yourself easy about that! I and the boys hoped you'd turn up and
   6955 stop here last night."
   6956 
   6957 "I was awful scared," said Huck, "and I run. I took out when the
   6958 pistols went off, and I didn't stop for three mile. I've come now becuz
   6959 I wanted to know about it, you know; and I come before daylight becuz I
   6960 didn't want to run across them devils, even if they was dead."
   6961 
   6962 "Well, poor chap, you do look as if you'd had a hard night of it--but
   6963 there's a bed here for you when you've had your breakfast. No, they
   6964 ain't dead, lad--we are sorry enough for that. You see we knew right
   6965 where to put our hands on them, by your description; so we crept along
   6966 on tiptoe till we got within fifteen feet of them--dark as a cellar
   6967 that sumach path was--and just then I found I was going to sneeze. It
   6968 was the meanest kind of luck! I tried to keep it back, but no use
   6969 --'twas bound to come, and it did come! I was in the lead with my pistol
   6970 raised, and when the sneeze started those scoundrels a-rustling to get
   6971 out of the path, I sung out, 'Fire boys!' and blazed away at the place
   6972 where the rustling was. So did the boys. But they were off in a jiffy,
   6973 those villains, and we after them, down through the woods. I judge we
   6974 never touched them. They fired a shot apiece as they started, but their
   6975 bullets whizzed by and didn't do us any harm. As soon as we lost the
   6976 sound of their feet we quit chasing, and went down and stirred up the
   6977 constables. They got a posse together, and went off to guard the river
   6978 bank, and as soon as it is light the sheriff and a gang are going to
   6979 beat up the woods. My boys will be with them presently. I wish we had
   6980 some sort of description of those rascals--'twould help a good deal.
   6981 But you couldn't see what they were like, in the dark, lad, I suppose?"
   6982 
   6983 "Oh yes; I saw them down-town and follered them."
   6984 
   6985 "Splendid! Describe them--describe them, my boy!"
   6986 
   6987 "One's the old deaf and dumb Spaniard that's ben around here once or
   6988 twice, and t'other's a mean-looking, ragged--"
   6989 
   6990 "That's enough, lad, we know the men! Happened on them in the woods
   6991 back of the widow's one day, and they slunk away. Off with you, boys,
   6992 and tell the sheriff--get your breakfast to-morrow morning!"
   6993 
   6994 The Welshman's sons departed at once. As they were leaving the room
   6995 Huck sprang up and exclaimed:
   6996 
   6997 "Oh, please don't tell ANYbody it was me that blowed on them! Oh,
   6998 please!"
   6999 
   7000 "All right if you say it, Huck, but you ought to have the credit of
   7001 what you did."
   7002 
   7003 "Oh no, no! Please don't tell!"
   7004 
   7005 When the young men were gone, the old Welshman said:
   7006 
   7007 "They won't tell--and I won't. But why don't you want it known?"
   7008 
   7009 Huck would not explain, further than to say that he already knew too
   7010 much about one of those men and would not have the man know that he
   7011 knew anything against him for the whole world--he would be killed for
   7012 knowing it, sure.
   7013 
   7014 The old man promised secrecy once more, and said:
   7015 
   7016 "How did you come to follow these fellows, lad? Were they looking
   7017 suspicious?"
   7018 
   7019 Huck was silent while he framed a duly cautious reply. Then he said:
   7020 
   7021 "Well, you see, I'm a kind of a hard lot,--least everybody says so,
   7022 and I don't see nothing agin it--and sometimes I can't sleep much, on
   7023 account of thinking about it and sort of trying to strike out a new way
   7024 of doing. That was the way of it last night. I couldn't sleep, and so I
   7025 come along up-street 'bout midnight, a-turning it all over, and when I
   7026 got to that old shackly brick store by the Temperance Tavern, I backed
   7027 up agin the wall to have another think. Well, just then along comes
   7028 these two chaps slipping along close by me, with something under their
   7029 arm, and I reckoned they'd stole it. One was a-smoking, and t'other one
   7030 wanted a light; so they stopped right before me and the cigars lit up
   7031 their faces and I see that the big one was the deaf and dumb Spaniard,
   7032 by his white whiskers and the patch on his eye, and t'other one was a
   7033 rusty, ragged-looking devil."
   7034 
   7035 "Could you see the rags by the light of the cigars?"
   7036 
   7037 This staggered Huck for a moment. Then he said:
   7038 
   7039 "Well, I don't know--but somehow it seems as if I did."
   7040 
   7041 "Then they went on, and you--"
   7042 
   7043 "Follered 'em--yes. That was it. I wanted to see what was up--they
   7044 sneaked along so. I dogged 'em to the widder's stile, and stood in the
   7045 dark and heard the ragged one beg for the widder, and the Spaniard
   7046 swear he'd spile her looks just as I told you and your two--"
   7047 
   7048 "What! The DEAF AND DUMB man said all that!"
   7049 
   7050 Huck had made another terrible mistake! He was trying his best to keep
   7051 the old man from getting the faintest hint of who the Spaniard might
   7052 be, and yet his tongue seemed determined to get him into trouble in
   7053 spite of all he could do. He made several efforts to creep out of his
   7054 scrape, but the old man's eye was upon him and he made blunder after
   7055 blunder. Presently the Welshman said:
   7056 
   7057 "My boy, don't be afraid of me. I wouldn't hurt a hair of your head
   7058 for all the world. No--I'd protect you--I'd protect you. This Spaniard
   7059 is not deaf and dumb; you've let that slip without intending it; you
   7060 can't cover that up now. You know something about that Spaniard that
   7061 you want to keep dark. Now trust me--tell me what it is, and trust me
   7062 --I won't betray you."
   7063 
   7064 Huck looked into the old man's honest eyes a moment, then bent over
   7065 and whispered in his ear:
   7066 
   7067 "'Tain't a Spaniard--it's Injun Joe!"
   7068 
   7069 The Welshman almost jumped out of his chair. In a moment he said:
   7070 
   7071 "It's all plain enough, now. When you talked about notching ears and
   7072 slitting noses I judged that that was your own embellishment, because
   7073 white men don't take that sort of revenge. But an Injun! That's a
   7074 different matter altogether."
   7075 
   7076 During breakfast the talk went on, and in the course of it the old man
   7077 said that the last thing which he and his sons had done, before going
   7078 to bed, was to get a lantern and examine the stile and its vicinity for
   7079 marks of blood. They found none, but captured a bulky bundle of--
   7080 
   7081 "Of WHAT?"
   7082 
   7083 If the words had been lightning they could not have leaped with a more
   7084 stunning suddenness from Huck's blanched lips. His eyes were staring
   7085 wide, now, and his breath suspended--waiting for the answer. The
   7086 Welshman started--stared in return--three seconds--five seconds--ten
   7087 --then replied:
   7088 
   7089 "Of burglar's tools. Why, what's the MATTER with you?"
   7090 
   7091 Huck sank back, panting gently, but deeply, unutterably grateful. The
   7092 Welshman eyed him gravely, curiously--and presently said:
   7093 
   7094 "Yes, burglar's tools. That appears to relieve you a good deal. But
   7095 what did give you that turn? What were YOU expecting we'd found?"
   7096 
   7097 Huck was in a close place--the inquiring eye was upon him--he would
   7098 have given anything for material for a plausible answer--nothing
   7099 suggested itself--the inquiring eye was boring deeper and deeper--a
   7100 senseless reply offered--there was no time to weigh it, so at a venture
   7101 he uttered it--feebly:
   7102 
   7103 "Sunday-school books, maybe."
   7104 
   7105 Poor Huck was too distressed to smile, but the old man laughed loud
   7106 and joyously, shook up the details of his anatomy from head to foot,
   7107 and ended by saying that such a laugh was money in a-man's pocket,
   7108 because it cut down the doctor's bill like everything. Then he added:
   7109 
   7110 "Poor old chap, you're white and jaded--you ain't well a bit--no
   7111 wonder you're a little flighty and off your balance. But you'll come
   7112 out of it. Rest and sleep will fetch you out all right, I hope."
   7113 
   7114 Huck was irritated to think he had been such a goose and betrayed such
   7115 a suspicious excitement, for he had dropped the idea that the parcel
   7116 brought from the tavern was the treasure, as soon as he had heard the
   7117 talk at the widow's stile. He had only thought it was not the treasure,
   7118 however--he had not known that it wasn't--and so the suggestion of a
   7119 captured bundle was too much for his self-possession. But on the whole
   7120 he felt glad the little episode had happened, for now he knew beyond
   7121 all question that that bundle was not THE bundle, and so his mind was
   7122 at rest and exceedingly comfortable. In fact, everything seemed to be
   7123 drifting just in the right direction, now; the treasure must be still
   7124 in No. 2, the men would be captured and jailed that day, and he and Tom
   7125 could seize the gold that night without any trouble or any fear of
   7126 interruption.
   7127 
   7128 Just as breakfast was completed there was a knock at the door. Huck
   7129 jumped for a hiding-place, for he had no mind to be connected even
   7130 remotely with the late event. The Welshman admitted several ladies and
   7131 gentlemen, among them the Widow Douglas, and noticed that groups of
   7132 citizens were climbing up the hill--to stare at the stile. So the news
   7133 had spread. The Welshman had to tell the story of the night to the
   7134 visitors. The widow's gratitude for her preservation was outspoken.
   7135 
   7136 "Don't say a word about it, madam. There's another that you're more
   7137 beholden to than you are to me and my boys, maybe, but he don't allow
   7138 me to tell his name. We wouldn't have been there but for him."
   7139 
   7140 Of course this excited a curiosity so vast that it almost belittled
   7141 the main matter--but the Welshman allowed it to eat into the vitals of
   7142 his visitors, and through them be transmitted to the whole town, for he
   7143 refused to part with his secret. When all else had been learned, the
   7144 widow said:
   7145 
   7146 "I went to sleep reading in bed and slept straight through all that
   7147 noise. Why didn't you come and wake me?"
   7148 
   7149 "We judged it warn't worth while. Those fellows warn't likely to come
   7150 again--they hadn't any tools left to work with, and what was the use of
   7151 waking you up and scaring you to death? My three negro men stood guard
   7152 at your house all the rest of the night. They've just come back."
   7153 
   7154 More visitors came, and the story had to be told and retold for a
   7155 couple of hours more.
   7156 
   7157 There was no Sabbath-school during day-school vacation, but everybody
   7158 was early at church. The stirring event was well canvassed. News came
   7159 that not a sign of the two villains had been yet discovered. When the
   7160 sermon was finished, Judge Thatcher's wife dropped alongside of Mrs.
   7161 Harper as she moved down the aisle with the crowd and said:
   7162 
   7163 "Is my Becky going to sleep all day? I just expected she would be
   7164 tired to death."
   7165 
   7166 "Your Becky?"
   7167 
   7168 "Yes," with a startled look--"didn't she stay with you last night?"
   7169 
   7170 "Why, no."
   7171 
   7172 Mrs. Thatcher turned pale, and sank into a pew, just as Aunt Polly,
   7173 talking briskly with a friend, passed by. Aunt Polly said:
   7174 
   7175 "Good-morning, Mrs. Thatcher. Good-morning, Mrs. Harper. I've got a
   7176 boy that's turned up missing. I reckon my Tom stayed at your house last
   7177 night--one of you. And now he's afraid to come to church. I've got to
   7178 settle with him."
   7179 
   7180 Mrs. Thatcher shook her head feebly and turned paler than ever.
   7181 
   7182 "He didn't stay with us," said Mrs. Harper, beginning to look uneasy.
   7183 A marked anxiety came into Aunt Polly's face.
   7184 
   7185 "Joe Harper, have you seen my Tom this morning?"
   7186 
   7187 "No'm."
   7188 
   7189 "When did you see him last?"
   7190 
   7191 Joe tried to remember, but was not sure he could say. The people had
   7192 stopped moving out of church. Whispers passed along, and a boding
   7193 uneasiness took possession of every countenance. Children were
   7194 anxiously questioned, and young teachers. They all said they had not
   7195 noticed whether Tom and Becky were on board the ferryboat on the
   7196 homeward trip; it was dark; no one thought of inquiring if any one was
   7197 missing. One young man finally blurted out his fear that they were
   7198 still in the cave! Mrs. Thatcher swooned away. Aunt Polly fell to
   7199 crying and wringing her hands.
   7200 
   7201 The alarm swept from lip to lip, from group to group, from street to
   7202 street, and within five minutes the bells were wildly clanging and the
   7203 whole town was up! The Cardiff Hill episode sank into instant
   7204 insignificance, the burglars were forgotten, horses were saddled,
   7205 skiffs were manned, the ferryboat ordered out, and before the horror
   7206 was half an hour old, two hundred men were pouring down highroad and
   7207 river toward the cave.
   7208 
   7209 All the long afternoon the village seemed empty and dead. Many women
   7210 visited Aunt Polly and Mrs. Thatcher and tried to comfort them. They
   7211 cried with them, too, and that was still better than words. All the
   7212 tedious night the town waited for news; but when the morning dawned at
   7213 last, all the word that came was, "Send more candles--and send food."
   7214 Mrs. Thatcher was almost crazed; and Aunt Polly, also. Judge Thatcher
   7215 sent messages of hope and encouragement from the cave, but they
   7216 conveyed no real cheer.
   7217 
   7218 The old Welshman came home toward daylight, spattered with
   7219 candle-grease, smeared with clay, and almost worn out. He found Huck
   7220 still in the bed that had been provided for him, and delirious with
   7221 fever. The physicians were all at the cave, so the Widow Douglas came
   7222 and took charge of the patient. She said she would do her best by him,
   7223 because, whether he was good, bad, or indifferent, he was the Lord's,
   7224 and nothing that was the Lord's was a thing to be neglected. The
   7225 Welshman said Huck had good spots in him, and the widow said:
   7226 
   7227 "You can depend on it. That's the Lord's mark. He don't leave it off.
   7228 He never does. Puts it somewhere on every creature that comes from his
   7229 hands."
   7230 
   7231 Early in the forenoon parties of jaded men began to straggle into the
   7232 village, but the strongest of the citizens continued searching. All the
   7233 news that could be gained was that remotenesses of the cavern were
   7234 being ransacked that had never been visited before; that every corner
   7235 and crevice was going to be thoroughly searched; that wherever one
   7236 wandered through the maze of passages, lights were to be seen flitting
   7237 hither and thither in the distance, and shoutings and pistol-shots sent
   7238 their hollow reverberations to the ear down the sombre aisles. In one
   7239 place, far from the section usually traversed by tourists, the names
   7240 "BECKY & TOM" had been found traced upon the rocky wall with
   7241 candle-smoke, and near at hand a grease-soiled bit of ribbon. Mrs.
   7242 Thatcher recognized the ribbon and cried over it. She said it was the
   7243 last relic she should ever have of her child; and that no other memorial
   7244 of her could ever be so precious, because this one parted latest from
   7245 the living body before the awful death came. Some said that now and
   7246 then, in the cave, a far-away speck of light would glimmer, and then a
   7247 glorious shout would burst forth and a score of men go trooping down the
   7248 echoing aisle--and then a sickening disappointment always followed; the
   7249 children were not there; it was only a searcher's light.
   7250 
   7251 Three dreadful days and nights dragged their tedious hours along, and
   7252 the village sank into a hopeless stupor. No one had heart for anything.
   7253 The accidental discovery, just made, that the proprietor of the
   7254 Temperance Tavern kept liquor on his premises, scarcely fluttered the
   7255 public pulse, tremendous as the fact was. In a lucid interval, Huck
   7256 feebly led up to the subject of taverns, and finally asked--dimly
   7257 dreading the worst--if anything had been discovered at the Temperance
   7258 Tavern since he had been ill.
   7259 
   7260 "Yes," said the widow.
   7261 
   7262 Huck started up in bed, wild-eyed:
   7263 
   7264 "What? What was it?"
   7265 
   7266 "Liquor!--and the place has been shut up. Lie down, child--what a turn
   7267 you did give me!"
   7268 
   7269 "Only tell me just one thing--only just one--please! Was it Tom Sawyer
   7270 that found it?"
   7271 
   7272 The widow burst into tears. "Hush, hush, child, hush! I've told you
   7273 before, you must NOT talk. You are very, very sick!"
   7274 
   7275 Then nothing but liquor had been found; there would have been a great
   7276 powwow if it had been the gold. So the treasure was gone forever--gone
   7277 forever! But what could she be crying about? Curious that she should
   7278 cry.
   7279 
   7280 These thoughts worked their dim way through Huck's mind, and under the
   7281 weariness they gave him he fell asleep. The widow said to herself:
   7282 
   7283 "There--he's asleep, poor wreck. Tom Sawyer find it! Pity but somebody
   7284 could find Tom Sawyer! Ah, there ain't many left, now, that's got hope
   7285 enough, or strength enough, either, to go on searching."
   7286 
   7287 
   7288 
   7289 CHAPTER XXXI
   7290 
   7291 NOW to return to Tom and Becky's share in the picnic. They tripped
   7292 along the murky aisles with the rest of the company, visiting the
   7293 familiar wonders of the cave--wonders dubbed with rather
   7294 over-descriptive names, such as "The Drawing-Room," "The Cathedral,"
   7295 "Aladdin's Palace," and so on. Presently the hide-and-seek frolicking
   7296 began, and Tom and Becky engaged in it with zeal until the exertion
   7297 began to grow a trifle wearisome; then they wandered down a sinuous
   7298 avenue holding their candles aloft and reading the tangled web-work of
   7299 names, dates, post-office addresses, and mottoes with which the rocky
   7300 walls had been frescoed (in candle-smoke). Still drifting along and
   7301 talking, they scarcely noticed that they were now in a part of the cave
   7302 whose walls were not frescoed. They smoked their own names under an
   7303 overhanging shelf and moved on. Presently they came to a place where a
   7304 little stream of water, trickling over a ledge and carrying a limestone
   7305 sediment with it, had, in the slow-dragging ages, formed a laced and
   7306 ruffled Niagara in gleaming and imperishable stone. Tom squeezed his
   7307 small body behind it in order to illuminate it for Becky's
   7308 gratification. He found that it curtained a sort of steep natural
   7309 stairway which was enclosed between narrow walls, and at once the
   7310 ambition to be a discoverer seized him. Becky responded to his call,
   7311 and they made a smoke-mark for future guidance, and started upon their
   7312 quest. They wound this way and that, far down into the secret depths of
   7313 the cave, made another mark, and branched off in search of novelties to
   7314 tell the upper world about. In one place they found a spacious cavern,
   7315 from whose ceiling depended a multitude of shining stalactites of the
   7316 length and circumference of a man's leg; they walked all about it,
   7317 wondering and admiring, and presently left it by one of the numerous
   7318 passages that opened into it. This shortly brought them to a bewitching
   7319 spring, whose basin was incrusted with a frostwork of glittering
   7320 crystals; it was in the midst of a cavern whose walls were supported by
   7321 many fantastic pillars which had been formed by the joining of great
   7322 stalactites and stalagmites together, the result of the ceaseless
   7323 water-drip of centuries. Under the roof vast knots of bats had packed
   7324 themselves together, thousands in a bunch; the lights disturbed the
   7325 creatures and they came flocking down by hundreds, squeaking and
   7326 darting furiously at the candles. Tom knew their ways and the danger of
   7327 this sort of conduct. He seized Becky's hand and hurried her into the
   7328 first corridor that offered; and none too soon, for a bat struck
   7329 Becky's light out with its wing while she was passing out of the
   7330 cavern. The bats chased the children a good distance; but the fugitives
   7331 plunged into every new passage that offered, and at last got rid of the
   7332 perilous things. Tom found a subterranean lake, shortly, which
   7333 stretched its dim length away until its shape was lost in the shadows.
   7334 He wanted to explore its borders, but concluded that it would be best
   7335 to sit down and rest awhile, first. Now, for the first time, the deep
   7336 stillness of the place laid a clammy hand upon the spirits of the
   7337 children. Becky said:
   7338 
   7339 "Why, I didn't notice, but it seems ever so long since I heard any of
   7340 the others."
   7341 
   7342 "Come to think, Becky, we are away down below them--and I don't know
   7343 how far away north, or south, or east, or whichever it is. We couldn't
   7344 hear them here."
   7345 
   7346 Becky grew apprehensive.
   7347 
   7348 "I wonder how long we've been down here, Tom? We better start back."
   7349 
   7350 "Yes, I reckon we better. P'raps we better."
   7351 
   7352 "Can you find the way, Tom? It's all a mixed-up crookedness to me."
   7353 
   7354 "I reckon I could find it--but then the bats. If they put our candles
   7355 out it will be an awful fix. Let's try some other way, so as not to go
   7356 through there."
   7357 
   7358 "Well. But I hope we won't get lost. It would be so awful!" and the
   7359 girl shuddered at the thought of the dreadful possibilities.
   7360 
   7361 They started through a corridor, and traversed it in silence a long
   7362 way, glancing at each new opening, to see if there was anything
   7363 familiar about the look of it; but they were all strange. Every time
   7364 Tom made an examination, Becky would watch his face for an encouraging
   7365 sign, and he would say cheerily:
   7366 
   7367 "Oh, it's all right. This ain't the one, but we'll come to it right
   7368 away!"
   7369 
   7370 But he felt less and less hopeful with each failure, and presently
   7371 began to turn off into diverging avenues at sheer random, in desperate
   7372 hope of finding the one that was wanted. He still said it was "all
   7373 right," but there was such a leaden dread at his heart that the words
   7374 had lost their ring and sounded just as if he had said, "All is lost!"
   7375 Becky clung to his side in an anguish of fear, and tried hard to keep
   7376 back the tears, but they would come. At last she said:
   7377 
   7378 "Oh, Tom, never mind the bats, let's go back that way! We seem to get
   7379 worse and worse off all the time."
   7380 
   7381 "Listen!" said he.
   7382 
   7383 Profound silence; silence so deep that even their breathings were
   7384 conspicuous in the hush. Tom shouted. The call went echoing down the
   7385 empty aisles and died out in the distance in a faint sound that
   7386 resembled a ripple of mocking laughter.
   7387 
   7388 "Oh, don't do it again, Tom, it is too horrid," said Becky.
   7389 
   7390 "It is horrid, but I better, Becky; they might hear us, you know," and
   7391 he shouted again.
   7392 
   7393 The "might" was even a chillier horror than the ghostly laughter, it
   7394 so confessed a perishing hope. The children stood still and listened;
   7395 but there was no result. Tom turned upon the back track at once, and
   7396 hurried his steps. It was but a little while before a certain
   7397 indecision in his manner revealed another fearful fact to Becky--he
   7398 could not find his way back!
   7399 
   7400 "Oh, Tom, you didn't make any marks!"
   7401 
   7402 "Becky, I was such a fool! Such a fool! I never thought we might want
   7403 to come back! No--I can't find the way. It's all mixed up."
   7404 
   7405 "Tom, Tom, we're lost! we're lost! We never can get out of this awful
   7406 place! Oh, why DID we ever leave the others!"
   7407 
   7408 She sank to the ground and burst into such a frenzy of crying that Tom
   7409 was appalled with the idea that she might die, or lose her reason. He
   7410 sat down by her and put his arms around her; she buried her face in his
   7411 bosom, she clung to him, she poured out her terrors, her unavailing
   7412 regrets, and the far echoes turned them all to jeering laughter. Tom
   7413 begged her to pluck up hope again, and she said she could not. He fell
   7414 to blaming and abusing himself for getting her into this miserable
   7415 situation; this had a better effect. She said she would try to hope
   7416 again, she would get up and follow wherever he might lead if only he
   7417 would not talk like that any more. For he was no more to blame than
   7418 she, she said.
   7419 
   7420 So they moved on again--aimlessly--simply at random--all they could do
   7421 was to move, keep moving. For a little while, hope made a show of
   7422 reviving--not with any reason to back it, but only because it is its
   7423 nature to revive when the spring has not been taken out of it by age
   7424 and familiarity with failure.
   7425 
   7426 By-and-by Tom took Becky's candle and blew it out. This economy meant
   7427 so much! Words were not needed. Becky understood, and her hope died
   7428 again. She knew that Tom had a whole candle and three or four pieces in
   7429 his pockets--yet he must economize.
   7430 
   7431 By-and-by, fatigue began to assert its claims; the children tried to
   7432 pay attention, for it was dreadful to think of sitting down when time
   7433 was grown to be so precious, moving, in some direction, in any
   7434 direction, was at least progress and might bear fruit; but to sit down
   7435 was to invite death and shorten its pursuit.
   7436 
   7437 At last Becky's frail limbs refused to carry her farther. She sat
   7438 down. Tom rested with her, and they talked of home, and the friends
   7439 there, and the comfortable beds and, above all, the light! Becky cried,
   7440 and Tom tried to think of some way of comforting her, but all his
   7441 encouragements were grown threadbare with use, and sounded like
   7442 sarcasms. Fatigue bore so heavily upon Becky that she drowsed off to
   7443 sleep. Tom was grateful. He sat looking into her drawn face and saw it
   7444 grow smooth and natural under the influence of pleasant dreams; and
   7445 by-and-by a smile dawned and rested there. The peaceful face reflected
   7446 somewhat of peace and healing into his own spirit, and his thoughts
   7447 wandered away to bygone times and dreamy memories. While he was deep in
   7448 his musings, Becky woke up with a breezy little laugh--but it was
   7449 stricken dead upon her lips, and a groan followed it.
   7450 
   7451 "Oh, how COULD I sleep! I wish I never, never had waked! No! No, I
   7452 don't, Tom! Don't look so! I won't say it again."
   7453 
   7454 "I'm glad you've slept, Becky; you'll feel rested, now, and we'll find
   7455 the way out."
   7456 
   7457 "We can try, Tom; but I've seen such a beautiful country in my dream.
   7458 I reckon we are going there."
   7459 
   7460 "Maybe not, maybe not. Cheer up, Becky, and let's go on trying."
   7461 
   7462 They rose up and wandered along, hand in hand and hopeless. They tried
   7463 to estimate how long they had been in the cave, but all they knew was
   7464 that it seemed days and weeks, and yet it was plain that this could not
   7465 be, for their candles were not gone yet. A long time after this--they
   7466 could not tell how long--Tom said they must go softly and listen for
   7467 dripping water--they must find a spring. They found one presently, and
   7468 Tom said it was time to rest again. Both were cruelly tired, yet Becky
   7469 said she thought she could go a little farther. She was surprised to
   7470 hear Tom dissent. She could not understand it. They sat down, and Tom
   7471 fastened his candle to the wall in front of them with some clay.
   7472 Thought was soon busy; nothing was said for some time. Then Becky broke
   7473 the silence:
   7474 
   7475 "Tom, I am so hungry!"
   7476 
   7477 Tom took something out of his pocket.
   7478 
   7479 "Do you remember this?" said he.
   7480 
   7481 Becky almost smiled.
   7482 
   7483 "It's our wedding-cake, Tom."
   7484 
   7485 "Yes--I wish it was as big as a barrel, for it's all we've got."
   7486 
   7487 "I saved it from the picnic for us to dream on, Tom, the way grown-up
   7488 people do with wedding-cake--but it'll be our--"
   7489 
   7490 She dropped the sentence where it was. Tom divided the cake and Becky
   7491 ate with good appetite, while Tom nibbled at his moiety. There was
   7492 abundance of cold water to finish the feast with. By-and-by Becky
   7493 suggested that they move on again. Tom was silent a moment. Then he
   7494 said:
   7495 
   7496 "Becky, can you bear it if I tell you something?"
   7497 
   7498 Becky's face paled, but she thought she could.
   7499 
   7500 "Well, then, Becky, we must stay here, where there's water to drink.
   7501 That little piece is our last candle!"
   7502 
   7503 Becky gave loose to tears and wailings. Tom did what he could to
   7504 comfort her, but with little effect. At length Becky said:
   7505 
   7506 "Tom!"
   7507 
   7508 "Well, Becky?"
   7509 
   7510 "They'll miss us and hunt for us!"
   7511 
   7512 "Yes, they will! Certainly they will!"
   7513 
   7514 "Maybe they're hunting for us now, Tom."
   7515 
   7516 "Why, I reckon maybe they are. I hope they are."
   7517 
   7518 "When would they miss us, Tom?"
   7519 
   7520 "When they get back to the boat, I reckon."
   7521 
   7522 "Tom, it might be dark then--would they notice we hadn't come?"
   7523 
   7524 "I don't know. But anyway, your mother would miss you as soon as they
   7525 got home."
   7526 
   7527 A frightened look in Becky's face brought Tom to his senses and he saw
   7528 that he had made a blunder. Becky was not to have gone home that night!
   7529 The children became silent and thoughtful. In a moment a new burst of
   7530 grief from Becky showed Tom that the thing in his mind had struck hers
   7531 also--that the Sabbath morning might be half spent before Mrs. Thatcher
   7532 discovered that Becky was not at Mrs. Harper's.
   7533 
   7534 The children fastened their eyes upon their bit of candle and watched
   7535 it melt slowly and pitilessly away; saw the half inch of wick stand
   7536 alone at last; saw the feeble flame rise and fall, climb the thin
   7537 column of smoke, linger at its top a moment, and then--the horror of
   7538 utter darkness reigned!
   7539 
   7540 How long afterward it was that Becky came to a slow consciousness that
   7541 she was crying in Tom's arms, neither could tell. All that they knew
   7542 was, that after what seemed a mighty stretch of time, both awoke out of
   7543 a dead stupor of sleep and resumed their miseries once more. Tom said
   7544 it might be Sunday, now--maybe Monday. He tried to get Becky to talk,
   7545 but her sorrows were too oppressive, all her hopes were gone. Tom said
   7546 that they must have been missed long ago, and no doubt the search was
   7547 going on. He would shout and maybe some one would come. He tried it;
   7548 but in the darkness the distant echoes sounded so hideously that he
   7549 tried it no more.
   7550 
   7551 The hours wasted away, and hunger came to torment the captives again.
   7552 A portion of Tom's half of the cake was left; they divided and ate it.
   7553 But they seemed hungrier than before. The poor morsel of food only
   7554 whetted desire.
   7555 
   7556 By-and-by Tom said:
   7557 
   7558 "SH! Did you hear that?"
   7559 
   7560 Both held their breath and listened. There was a sound like the
   7561 faintest, far-off shout. Instantly Tom answered it, and leading Becky
   7562 by the hand, started groping down the corridor in its direction.
   7563 Presently he listened again; again the sound was heard, and apparently
   7564 a little nearer.
   7565 
   7566 "It's them!" said Tom; "they're coming! Come along, Becky--we're all
   7567 right now!"
   7568 
   7569 The joy of the prisoners was almost overwhelming. Their speed was
   7570 slow, however, because pitfalls were somewhat common, and had to be
   7571 guarded against. They shortly came to one and had to stop. It might be
   7572 three feet deep, it might be a hundred--there was no passing it at any
   7573 rate. Tom got down on his breast and reached as far down as he could.
   7574 No bottom. They must stay there and wait until the searchers came. They
   7575 listened; evidently the distant shoutings were growing more distant! a
   7576 moment or two more and they had gone altogether. The heart-sinking
   7577 misery of it! Tom whooped until he was hoarse, but it was of no use. He
   7578 talked hopefully to Becky; but an age of anxious waiting passed and no
   7579 sounds came again.
   7580 
   7581 The children groped their way back to the spring. The weary time
   7582 dragged on; they slept again, and awoke famished and woe-stricken. Tom
   7583 believed it must be Tuesday by this time.
   7584 
   7585 Now an idea struck him. There were some side passages near at hand. It
   7586 would be better to explore some of these than bear the weight of the
   7587 heavy time in idleness. He took a kite-line from his pocket, tied it to
   7588 a projection, and he and Becky started, Tom in the lead, unwinding the
   7589 line as he groped along. At the end of twenty steps the corridor ended
   7590 in a "jumping-off place." Tom got down on his knees and felt below, and
   7591 then as far around the corner as he could reach with his hands
   7592 conveniently; he made an effort to stretch yet a little farther to the
   7593 right, and at that moment, not twenty yards away, a human hand, holding
   7594 a candle, appeared from behind a rock! Tom lifted up a glorious shout,
   7595 and instantly that hand was followed by the body it belonged to--Injun
   7596 Joe's! Tom was paralyzed; he could not move. He was vastly gratified
   7597 the next moment, to see the "Spaniard" take to his heels and get
   7598 himself out of sight. Tom wondered that Joe had not recognized his
   7599 voice and come over and killed him for testifying in court. But the
   7600 echoes must have disguised the voice. Without doubt, that was it, he
   7601 reasoned. Tom's fright weakened every muscle in his body. He said to
   7602 himself that if he had strength enough to get back to the spring he
   7603 would stay there, and nothing should tempt him to run the risk of
   7604 meeting Injun Joe again. He was careful to keep from Becky what it was
   7605 he had seen. He told her he had only shouted "for luck."
   7606 
   7607 But hunger and wretchedness rise superior to fears in the long run.
   7608 Another tedious wait at the spring and another long sleep brought
   7609 changes. The children awoke tortured with a raging hunger. Tom believed
   7610 that it must be Wednesday or Thursday or even Friday or Saturday, now,
   7611 and that the search had been given over. He proposed to explore another
   7612 passage. He felt willing to risk Injun Joe and all other terrors. But
   7613 Becky was very weak. She had sunk into a dreary apathy and would not be
   7614 roused. She said she would wait, now, where she was, and die--it would
   7615 not be long. She told Tom to go with the kite-line and explore if he
   7616 chose; but she implored him to come back every little while and speak
   7617 to her; and she made him promise that when the awful time came, he
   7618 would stay by her and hold her hand until all was over.
   7619 
   7620 Tom kissed her, with a choking sensation in his throat, and made a
   7621 show of being confident of finding the searchers or an escape from the
   7622 cave; then he took the kite-line in his hand and went groping down one
   7623 of the passages on his hands and knees, distressed with hunger and sick
   7624 with bodings of coming doom.
   7625 
   7626 
   7627 
   7628 CHAPTER XXXII
   7629 
   7630 TUESDAY afternoon came, and waned to the twilight. The village of St.
   7631 Petersburg still mourned. The lost children had not been found. Public
   7632 prayers had been offered up for them, and many and many a private
   7633 prayer that had the petitioner's whole heart in it; but still no good
   7634 news came from the cave. The majority of the searchers had given up the
   7635 quest and gone back to their daily avocations, saying that it was plain
   7636 the children could never be found. Mrs. Thatcher was very ill, and a
   7637 great part of the time delirious. People said it was heartbreaking to
   7638 hear her call her child, and raise her head and listen a whole minute
   7639 at a time, then lay it wearily down again with a moan. Aunt Polly had
   7640 drooped into a settled melancholy, and her gray hair had grown almost
   7641 white. The village went to its rest on Tuesday night, sad and forlorn.
   7642 
   7643 Away in the middle of the night a wild peal burst from the village
   7644 bells, and in a moment the streets were swarming with frantic half-clad
   7645 people, who shouted, "Turn out! turn out! they're found! they're
   7646 found!" Tin pans and horns were added to the din, the population massed
   7647 itself and moved toward the river, met the children coming in an open
   7648 carriage drawn by shouting citizens, thronged around it, joined its
   7649 homeward march, and swept magnificently up the main street roaring
   7650 huzzah after huzzah!
   7651 
   7652 The village was illuminated; nobody went to bed again; it was the
   7653 greatest night the little town had ever seen. During the first half-hour
   7654 a procession of villagers filed through Judge Thatcher's house, seized
   7655 the saved ones and kissed them, squeezed Mrs. Thatcher's hand, tried to
   7656 speak but couldn't--and drifted out raining tears all over the place.
   7657 
   7658 Aunt Polly's happiness was complete, and Mrs. Thatcher's nearly so. It
   7659 would be complete, however, as soon as the messenger dispatched with
   7660 the great news to the cave should get the word to her husband. Tom lay
   7661 upon a sofa with an eager auditory about him and told the history of
   7662 the wonderful adventure, putting in many striking additions to adorn it
   7663 withal; and closed with a description of how he left Becky and went on
   7664 an exploring expedition; how he followed two avenues as far as his
   7665 kite-line would reach; how he followed a third to the fullest stretch of
   7666 the kite-line, and was about to turn back when he glimpsed a far-off
   7667 speck that looked like daylight; dropped the line and groped toward it,
   7668 pushed his head and shoulders through a small hole, and saw the broad
   7669 Mississippi rolling by! And if it had only happened to be night he would
   7670 not have seen that speck of daylight and would not have explored that
   7671 passage any more! He told how he went back for Becky and broke the good
   7672 news and she told him not to fret her with such stuff, for she was
   7673 tired, and knew she was going to die, and wanted to. He described how he
   7674 labored with her and convinced her; and how she almost died for joy when
   7675 she had groped to where she actually saw the blue speck of daylight; how
   7676 he pushed his way out at the hole and then helped her out; how they sat
   7677 there and cried for gladness; how some men came along in a skiff and Tom
   7678 hailed them and told them their situation and their famished condition;
   7679 how the men didn't believe the wild tale at first, "because," said they,
   7680 "you are five miles down the river below the valley the cave is in"
   7681 --then took them aboard, rowed to a house, gave them supper, made them
   7682 rest till two or three hours after dark and then brought them home.
   7683 
   7684 Before day-dawn, Judge Thatcher and the handful of searchers with him
   7685 were tracked out, in the cave, by the twine clews they had strung
   7686 behind them, and informed of the great news.
   7687 
   7688 Three days and nights of toil and hunger in the cave were not to be
   7689 shaken off at once, as Tom and Becky soon discovered. They were
   7690 bedridden all of Wednesday and Thursday, and seemed to grow more and
   7691 more tired and worn, all the time. Tom got about, a little, on
   7692 Thursday, was down-town Friday, and nearly as whole as ever Saturday;
   7693 but Becky did not leave her room until Sunday, and then she looked as
   7694 if she had passed through a wasting illness.
   7695 
   7696 Tom learned of Huck's sickness and went to see him on Friday, but
   7697 could not be admitted to the bedroom; neither could he on Saturday or
   7698 Sunday. He was admitted daily after that, but was warned to keep still
   7699 about his adventure and introduce no exciting topic. The Widow Douglas
   7700 stayed by to see that he obeyed. At home Tom learned of the Cardiff
   7701 Hill event; also that the "ragged man's" body had eventually been found
   7702 in the river near the ferry-landing; he had been drowned while trying
   7703 to escape, perhaps.
   7704 
   7705 About a fortnight after Tom's rescue from the cave, he started off to
   7706 visit Huck, who had grown plenty strong enough, now, to hear exciting
   7707 talk, and Tom had some that would interest him, he thought. Judge
   7708 Thatcher's house was on Tom's way, and he stopped to see Becky. The
   7709 Judge and some friends set Tom to talking, and some one asked him
   7710 ironically if he wouldn't like to go to the cave again. Tom said he
   7711 thought he wouldn't mind it. The Judge said:
   7712 
   7713 "Well, there are others just like you, Tom, I've not the least doubt.
   7714 But we have taken care of that. Nobody will get lost in that cave any
   7715 more."
   7716 
   7717 "Why?"
   7718 
   7719 "Because I had its big door sheathed with boiler iron two weeks ago,
   7720 and triple-locked--and I've got the keys."
   7721 
   7722 Tom turned as white as a sheet.
   7723 
   7724 "What's the matter, boy! Here, run, somebody! Fetch a glass of water!"
   7725 
   7726 The water was brought and thrown into Tom's face.
   7727 
   7728 "Ah, now you're all right. What was the matter with you, Tom?"
   7729 
   7730 "Oh, Judge, Injun Joe's in the cave!"
   7731 
   7732 
   7733 
   7734 CHAPTER XXXIII
   7735 
   7736 WITHIN a few minutes the news had spread, and a dozen skiff-loads of
   7737 men were on their way to McDougal's cave, and the ferryboat, well
   7738 filled with passengers, soon followed. Tom Sawyer was in the skiff that
   7739 bore Judge Thatcher.
   7740 
   7741 When the cave door was unlocked, a sorrowful sight presented itself in
   7742 the dim twilight of the place. Injun Joe lay stretched upon the ground,
   7743 dead, with his face close to the crack of the door, as if his longing
   7744 eyes had been fixed, to the latest moment, upon the light and the cheer
   7745 of the free world outside. Tom was touched, for he knew by his own
   7746 experience how this wretch had suffered. His pity was moved, but
   7747 nevertheless he felt an abounding sense of relief and security, now,
   7748 which revealed to him in a degree which he had not fully appreciated
   7749 before how vast a weight of dread had been lying upon him since the day
   7750 he lifted his voice against this bloody-minded outcast.
   7751 
   7752 Injun Joe's bowie-knife lay close by, its blade broken in two. The
   7753 great foundation-beam of the door had been chipped and hacked through,
   7754 with tedious labor; useless labor, too, it was, for the native rock
   7755 formed a sill outside it, and upon that stubborn material the knife had
   7756 wrought no effect; the only damage done was to the knife itself. But if
   7757 there had been no stony obstruction there the labor would have been
   7758 useless still, for if the beam had been wholly cut away Injun Joe could
   7759 not have squeezed his body under the door, and he knew it. So he had
   7760 only hacked that place in order to be doing something--in order to pass
   7761 the weary time--in order to employ his tortured faculties. Ordinarily
   7762 one could find half a dozen bits of candle stuck around in the crevices
   7763 of this vestibule, left there by tourists; but there were none now. The
   7764 prisoner had searched them out and eaten them. He had also contrived to
   7765 catch a few bats, and these, also, he had eaten, leaving only their
   7766 claws. The poor unfortunate had starved to death. In one place, near at
   7767 hand, a stalagmite had been slowly growing up from the ground for ages,
   7768 builded by the water-drip from a stalactite overhead. The captive had
   7769 broken off the stalagmite, and upon the stump had placed a stone,
   7770 wherein he had scooped a shallow hollow to catch the precious drop
   7771 that fell once in every three minutes with the dreary regularity of a
   7772 clock-tick--a dessertspoonful once in four and twenty hours. That drop
   7773 was falling when the Pyramids were new; when Troy fell; when the
   7774 foundations of Rome were laid; when Christ was crucified; when the
   7775 Conqueror created the British empire; when Columbus sailed; when the
   7776 massacre at Lexington was "news." It is falling now; it will still be
   7777 falling when all these things shall have sunk down the afternoon of
   7778 history, and the twilight of tradition, and been swallowed up in the
   7779 thick night of oblivion. Has everything a purpose and a mission? Did
   7780 this drop fall patiently during five thousand years to be ready for
   7781 this flitting human insect's need? and has it another important object
   7782 to accomplish ten thousand years to come? No matter. It is many and
   7783 many a year since the hapless half-breed scooped out the stone to catch
   7784 the priceless drops, but to this day the tourist stares longest at that
   7785 pathetic stone and that slow-dropping water when he comes to see the
   7786 wonders of McDougal's cave. Injun Joe's cup stands first in the list of
   7787 the cavern's marvels; even "Aladdin's Palace" cannot rival it.
   7788 
   7789 Injun Joe was buried near the mouth of the cave; and people flocked
   7790 there in boats and wagons from the towns and from all the farms and
   7791 hamlets for seven miles around; they brought their children, and all
   7792 sorts of provisions, and confessed that they had had almost as
   7793 satisfactory a time at the funeral as they could have had at the
   7794 hanging.
   7795 
   7796 This funeral stopped the further growth of one thing--the petition to
   7797 the governor for Injun Joe's pardon. The petition had been largely
   7798 signed; many tearful and eloquent meetings had been held, and a
   7799 committee of sappy women been appointed to go in deep mourning and wail
   7800 around the governor, and implore him to be a merciful ass and trample
   7801 his duty under foot. Injun Joe was believed to have killed five
   7802 citizens of the village, but what of that? If he had been Satan himself
   7803 there would have been plenty of weaklings ready to scribble their names
   7804 to a pardon-petition, and drip a tear on it from their permanently
   7805 impaired and leaky water-works.
   7806 
   7807 The morning after the funeral Tom took Huck to a private place to have
   7808 an important talk. Huck had learned all about Tom's adventure from the
   7809 Welshman and the Widow Douglas, by this time, but Tom said he reckoned
   7810 there was one thing they had not told him; that thing was what he
   7811 wanted to talk about now. Huck's face saddened. He said:
   7812 
   7813 "I know what it is. You got into No. 2 and never found anything but
   7814 whiskey. Nobody told me it was you; but I just knowed it must 'a' ben
   7815 you, soon as I heard 'bout that whiskey business; and I knowed you
   7816 hadn't got the money becuz you'd 'a' got at me some way or other and
   7817 told me even if you was mum to everybody else. Tom, something's always
   7818 told me we'd never get holt of that swag."
   7819 
   7820 "Why, Huck, I never told on that tavern-keeper. YOU know his tavern
   7821 was all right the Saturday I went to the picnic. Don't you remember you
   7822 was to watch there that night?"
   7823 
   7824 "Oh yes! Why, it seems 'bout a year ago. It was that very night that I
   7825 follered Injun Joe to the widder's."
   7826 
   7827 "YOU followed him?"
   7828 
   7829 "Yes--but you keep mum. I reckon Injun Joe's left friends behind him,
   7830 and I don't want 'em souring on me and doing me mean tricks. If it
   7831 hadn't ben for me he'd be down in Texas now, all right."
   7832 
   7833 Then Huck told his entire adventure in confidence to Tom, who had only
   7834 heard of the Welshman's part of it before.
   7835 
   7836 "Well," said Huck, presently, coming back to the main question,
   7837 "whoever nipped the whiskey in No. 2, nipped the money, too, I reckon
   7838 --anyways it's a goner for us, Tom."
   7839 
   7840 "Huck, that money wasn't ever in No. 2!"
   7841 
   7842 "What!" Huck searched his comrade's face keenly. "Tom, have you got on
   7843 the track of that money again?"
   7844 
   7845 "Huck, it's in the cave!"
   7846 
   7847 Huck's eyes blazed.
   7848 
   7849 "Say it again, Tom."
   7850 
   7851 "The money's in the cave!"
   7852 
   7853 "Tom--honest injun, now--is it fun, or earnest?"
   7854 
   7855 "Earnest, Huck--just as earnest as ever I was in my life. Will you go
   7856 in there with me and help get it out?"
   7857 
   7858 "I bet I will! I will if it's where we can blaze our way to it and not
   7859 get lost."
   7860 
   7861 "Huck, we can do that without the least little bit of trouble in the
   7862 world."
   7863 
   7864 "Good as wheat! What makes you think the money's--"
   7865 
   7866 "Huck, you just wait till we get in there. If we don't find it I'll
   7867 agree to give you my drum and every thing I've got in the world. I
   7868 will, by jings."
   7869 
   7870 "All right--it's a whiz. When do you say?"
   7871 
   7872 "Right now, if you say it. Are you strong enough?"
   7873 
   7874 "Is it far in the cave? I ben on my pins a little, three or four days,
   7875 now, but I can't walk more'n a mile, Tom--least I don't think I could."
   7876 
   7877 "It's about five mile into there the way anybody but me would go,
   7878 Huck, but there's a mighty short cut that they don't anybody but me
   7879 know about. Huck, I'll take you right to it in a skiff. I'll float the
   7880 skiff down there, and I'll pull it back again all by myself. You
   7881 needn't ever turn your hand over."
   7882 
   7883 "Less start right off, Tom."
   7884 
   7885 "All right. We want some bread and meat, and our pipes, and a little
   7886 bag or two, and two or three kite-strings, and some of these
   7887 new-fangled things they call lucifer matches. I tell you, many's
   7888 the time I wished I had some when I was in there before."
   7889 
   7890 A trifle after noon the boys borrowed a small skiff from a citizen who
   7891 was absent, and got under way at once. When they were several miles
   7892 below "Cave Hollow," Tom said:
   7893 
   7894 "Now you see this bluff here looks all alike all the way down from the
   7895 cave hollow--no houses, no wood-yards, bushes all alike. But do you see
   7896 that white place up yonder where there's been a landslide? Well, that's
   7897 one of my marks. We'll get ashore, now."
   7898 
   7899 They landed.
   7900 
   7901 "Now, Huck, where we're a-standing you could touch that hole I got out
   7902 of with a fishing-pole. See if you can find it."
   7903 
   7904 Huck searched all the place about, and found nothing. Tom proudly
   7905 marched into a thick clump of sumach bushes and said:
   7906 
   7907 "Here you are! Look at it, Huck; it's the snuggest hole in this
   7908 country. You just keep mum about it. All along I've been wanting to be
   7909 a robber, but I knew I'd got to have a thing like this, and where to
   7910 run across it was the bother. We've got it now, and we'll keep it
   7911 quiet, only we'll let Joe Harper and Ben Rogers in--because of course
   7912 there's got to be a Gang, or else there wouldn't be any style about it.
   7913 Tom Sawyer's Gang--it sounds splendid, don't it, Huck?"
   7914 
   7915 "Well, it just does, Tom. And who'll we rob?"
   7916 
   7917 "Oh, most anybody. Waylay people--that's mostly the way."
   7918 
   7919 "And kill them?"
   7920 
   7921 "No, not always. Hive them in the cave till they raise a ransom."
   7922 
   7923 "What's a ransom?"
   7924 
   7925 "Money. You make them raise all they can, off'n their friends; and
   7926 after you've kept them a year, if it ain't raised then you kill them.
   7927 That's the general way. Only you don't kill the women. You shut up the
   7928 women, but you don't kill them. They're always beautiful and rich, and
   7929 awfully scared. You take their watches and things, but you always take
   7930 your hat off and talk polite. They ain't anybody as polite as robbers
   7931 --you'll see that in any book. Well, the women get to loving you, and
   7932 after they've been in the cave a week or two weeks they stop crying and
   7933 after that you couldn't get them to leave. If you drove them out they'd
   7934 turn right around and come back. It's so in all the books."
   7935 
   7936 "Why, it's real bully, Tom. I believe it's better'n to be a pirate."
   7937 
   7938 "Yes, it's better in some ways, because it's close to home and
   7939 circuses and all that."
   7940 
   7941 By this time everything was ready and the boys entered the hole, Tom
   7942 in the lead. They toiled their way to the farther end of the tunnel,
   7943 then made their spliced kite-strings fast and moved on. A few steps
   7944 brought them to the spring, and Tom felt a shudder quiver all through
   7945 him. He showed Huck the fragment of candle-wick perched on a lump of
   7946 clay against the wall, and described how he and Becky had watched the
   7947 flame struggle and expire.
   7948 
   7949 The boys began to quiet down to whispers, now, for the stillness and
   7950 gloom of the place oppressed their spirits. They went on, and presently
   7951 entered and followed Tom's other corridor until they reached the
   7952 "jumping-off place." The candles revealed the fact that it was not
   7953 really a precipice, but only a steep clay hill twenty or thirty feet
   7954 high. Tom whispered:
   7955 
   7956 "Now I'll show you something, Huck."
   7957 
   7958 He held his candle aloft and said:
   7959 
   7960 "Look as far around the corner as you can. Do you see that? There--on
   7961 the big rock over yonder--done with candle-smoke."
   7962 
   7963 "Tom, it's a CROSS!"
   7964 
   7965 "NOW where's your Number Two? 'UNDER THE CROSS,' hey? Right yonder's
   7966 where I saw Injun Joe poke up his candle, Huck!"
   7967 
   7968 Huck stared at the mystic sign awhile, and then said with a shaky voice:
   7969 
   7970 "Tom, less git out of here!"
   7971 
   7972 "What! and leave the treasure?"
   7973 
   7974 "Yes--leave it. Injun Joe's ghost is round about there, certain."
   7975 
   7976 "No it ain't, Huck, no it ain't. It would ha'nt the place where he
   7977 died--away out at the mouth of the cave--five mile from here."
   7978 
   7979 "No, Tom, it wouldn't. It would hang round the money. I know the ways
   7980 of ghosts, and so do you."
   7981 
   7982 Tom began to fear that Huck was right. Misgivings gathered in his
   7983 mind. But presently an idea occurred to him--
   7984 
   7985 "Lookyhere, Huck, what fools we're making of ourselves! Injun Joe's
   7986 ghost ain't a going to come around where there's a cross!"
   7987 
   7988 The point was well taken. It had its effect.
   7989 
   7990 "Tom, I didn't think of that. But that's so. It's luck for us, that
   7991 cross is. I reckon we'll climb down there and have a hunt for that box."
   7992 
   7993 Tom went first, cutting rude steps in the clay hill as he descended.
   7994 Huck followed. Four avenues opened out of the small cavern which the
   7995 great rock stood in. The boys examined three of them with no result.
   7996 They found a small recess in the one nearest the base of the rock, with
   7997 a pallet of blankets spread down in it; also an old suspender, some
   7998 bacon rind, and the well-gnawed bones of two or three fowls. But there
   7999 was no money-box. The lads searched and researched this place, but in
   8000 vain. Tom said:
   8001 
   8002 "He said UNDER the cross. Well, this comes nearest to being under the
   8003 cross. It can't be under the rock itself, because that sets solid on
   8004 the ground."
   8005 
   8006 They searched everywhere once more, and then sat down discouraged.
   8007 Huck could suggest nothing. By-and-by Tom said:
   8008 
   8009 "Lookyhere, Huck, there's footprints and some candle-grease on the
   8010 clay about one side of this rock, but not on the other sides. Now,
   8011 what's that for? I bet you the money IS under the rock. I'm going to
   8012 dig in the clay."
   8013 
   8014 "That ain't no bad notion, Tom!" said Huck with animation.
   8015 
   8016 Tom's "real Barlow" was out at once, and he had not dug four inches
   8017 before he struck wood.
   8018 
   8019 "Hey, Huck!--you hear that?"
   8020 
   8021 Huck began to dig and scratch now. Some boards were soon uncovered and
   8022 removed. They had concealed a natural chasm which led under the rock.
   8023 Tom got into this and held his candle as far under the rock as he
   8024 could, but said he could not see to the end of the rift. He proposed to
   8025 explore. He stooped and passed under; the narrow way descended
   8026 gradually. He followed its winding course, first to the right, then to
   8027 the left, Huck at his heels. Tom turned a short curve, by-and-by, and
   8028 exclaimed:
   8029 
   8030 "My goodness, Huck, lookyhere!"
   8031 
   8032 It was the treasure-box, sure enough, occupying a snug little cavern,
   8033 along with an empty powder-keg, a couple of guns in leather cases, two
   8034 or three pairs of old moccasins, a leather belt, and some other rubbish
   8035 well soaked with the water-drip.
   8036 
   8037 "Got it at last!" said Huck, ploughing among the tarnished coins with
   8038 his hand. "My, but we're rich, Tom!"
   8039 
   8040 "Huck, I always reckoned we'd get it. It's just too good to believe,
   8041 but we HAVE got it, sure! Say--let's not fool around here. Let's snake
   8042 it out. Lemme see if I can lift the box."
   8043 
   8044 It weighed about fifty pounds. Tom could lift it, after an awkward
   8045 fashion, but could not carry it conveniently.
   8046 
   8047 "I thought so," he said; "THEY carried it like it was heavy, that day
   8048 at the ha'nted house. I noticed that. I reckon I was right to think of
   8049 fetching the little bags along."
   8050 
   8051 The money was soon in the bags and the boys took it up to the cross
   8052 rock.
   8053 
   8054 "Now less fetch the guns and things," said Huck.
   8055 
   8056 "No, Huck--leave them there. They're just the tricks to have when we
   8057 go to robbing. We'll keep them there all the time, and we'll hold our
   8058 orgies there, too. It's an awful snug place for orgies."
   8059 
   8060 "What orgies?"
   8061 
   8062 "I dono. But robbers always have orgies, and of course we've got to
   8063 have them, too. Come along, Huck, we've been in here a long time. It's
   8064 getting late, I reckon. I'm hungry, too. We'll eat and smoke when we
   8065 get to the skiff."
   8066 
   8067 They presently emerged into the clump of sumach bushes, looked warily
   8068 out, found the coast clear, and were soon lunching and smoking in the
   8069 skiff. As the sun dipped toward the horizon they pushed out and got
   8070 under way. Tom skimmed up the shore through the long twilight, chatting
   8071 cheerily with Huck, and landed shortly after dark.
   8072 
   8073 "Now, Huck," said Tom, "we'll hide the money in the loft of the
   8074 widow's woodshed, and I'll come up in the morning and we'll count it
   8075 and divide, and then we'll hunt up a place out in the woods for it
   8076 where it will be safe. Just you lay quiet here and watch the stuff till
   8077 I run and hook Benny Taylor's little wagon; I won't be gone a minute."
   8078 
   8079 He disappeared, and presently returned with the wagon, put the two
   8080 small sacks into it, threw some old rags on top of them, and started
   8081 off, dragging his cargo behind him. When the boys reached the
   8082 Welshman's house, they stopped to rest. Just as they were about to move
   8083 on, the Welshman stepped out and said:
   8084 
   8085 "Hallo, who's that?"
   8086 
   8087 "Huck and Tom Sawyer."
   8088 
   8089 "Good! Come along with me, boys, you are keeping everybody waiting.
   8090 Here--hurry up, trot ahead--I'll haul the wagon for you. Why, it's not
   8091 as light as it might be. Got bricks in it?--or old metal?"
   8092 
   8093 "Old metal," said Tom.
   8094 
   8095 "I judged so; the boys in this town will take more trouble and fool
   8096 away more time hunting up six bits' worth of old iron to sell to the
   8097 foundry than they would to make twice the money at regular work. But
   8098 that's human nature--hurry along, hurry along!"
   8099 
   8100 The boys wanted to know what the hurry was about.
   8101 
   8102 "Never mind; you'll see, when we get to the Widow Douglas'."
   8103 
   8104 Huck said with some apprehension--for he was long used to being
   8105 falsely accused:
   8106 
   8107 "Mr. Jones, we haven't been doing nothing."
   8108 
   8109 The Welshman laughed.
   8110 
   8111 "Well, I don't know, Huck, my boy. I don't know about that. Ain't you
   8112 and the widow good friends?"
   8113 
   8114 "Yes. Well, she's ben good friends to me, anyway."
   8115 
   8116 "All right, then. What do you want to be afraid for?"
   8117 
   8118 This question was not entirely answered in Huck's slow mind before he
   8119 found himself pushed, along with Tom, into Mrs. Douglas' drawing-room.
   8120 Mr. Jones left the wagon near the door and followed.
   8121 
   8122 The place was grandly lighted, and everybody that was of any
   8123 consequence in the village was there. The Thatchers were there, the
   8124 Harpers, the Rogerses, Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, the minister, the editor,
   8125 and a great many more, and all dressed in their best. The widow
   8126 received the boys as heartily as any one could well receive two such
   8127 looking beings. They were covered with clay and candle-grease. Aunt
   8128 Polly blushed crimson with humiliation, and frowned and shook her head
   8129 at Tom. Nobody suffered half as much as the two boys did, however. Mr.
   8130 Jones said:
   8131 
   8132 "Tom wasn't at home, yet, so I gave him up; but I stumbled on him and
   8133 Huck right at my door, and so I just brought them along in a hurry."
   8134 
   8135 "And you did just right," said the widow. "Come with me, boys."
   8136 
   8137 She took them to a bedchamber and said:
   8138 
   8139 "Now wash and dress yourselves. Here are two new suits of clothes
   8140 --shirts, socks, everything complete. They're Huck's--no, no thanks,
   8141 Huck--Mr. Jones bought one and I the other. But they'll fit both of you.
   8142 Get into them. We'll wait--come down when you are slicked up enough."
   8143 
   8144 Then she left.
   8145 
   8146 
   8147 
   8148 CHAPTER XXXIV
   8149 
   8150 HUCK said: "Tom, we can slope, if we can find a rope. The window ain't
   8151 high from the ground."
   8152 
   8153 "Shucks! what do you want to slope for?"
   8154 
   8155 "Well, I ain't used to that kind of a crowd. I can't stand it. I ain't
   8156 going down there, Tom."
   8157 
   8158 "Oh, bother! It ain't anything. I don't mind it a bit. I'll take care
   8159 of you."
   8160 
   8161 Sid appeared.
   8162 
   8163 "Tom," said he, "auntie has been waiting for you all the afternoon.
   8164 Mary got your Sunday clothes ready, and everybody's been fretting about
   8165 you. Say--ain't this grease and clay, on your clothes?"
   8166 
   8167 "Now, Mr. Siddy, you jist 'tend to your own business. What's all this
   8168 blow-out about, anyway?"
   8169 
   8170 "It's one of the widow's parties that she's always having. This time
   8171 it's for the Welshman and his sons, on account of that scrape they
   8172 helped her out of the other night. And say--I can tell you something,
   8173 if you want to know."
   8174 
   8175 "Well, what?"
   8176 
   8177 "Why, old Mr. Jones is going to try to spring something on the people
   8178 here to-night, but I overheard him tell auntie to-day about it, as a
   8179 secret, but I reckon it's not much of a secret now. Everybody knows
   8180 --the widow, too, for all she tries to let on she don't. Mr. Jones was
   8181 bound Huck should be here--couldn't get along with his grand secret
   8182 without Huck, you know!"
   8183 
   8184 "Secret about what, Sid?"
   8185 
   8186 "About Huck tracking the robbers to the widow's. I reckon Mr. Jones
   8187 was going to make a grand time over his surprise, but I bet you it will
   8188 drop pretty flat."
   8189 
   8190 Sid chuckled in a very contented and satisfied way.
   8191 
   8192 "Sid, was it you that told?"
   8193 
   8194 "Oh, never mind who it was. SOMEBODY told--that's enough."
   8195 
   8196 "Sid, there's only one person in this town mean enough to do that, and
   8197 that's you. If you had been in Huck's place you'd 'a' sneaked down the
   8198 hill and never told anybody on the robbers. You can't do any but mean
   8199 things, and you can't bear to see anybody praised for doing good ones.
   8200 There--no thanks, as the widow says"--and Tom cuffed Sid's ears and
   8201 helped him to the door with several kicks. "Now go and tell auntie if
   8202 you dare--and to-morrow you'll catch it!"
   8203 
   8204 Some minutes later the widow's guests were at the supper-table, and a
   8205 dozen children were propped up at little side-tables in the same room,
   8206 after the fashion of that country and that day. At the proper time Mr.
   8207 Jones made his little speech, in which he thanked the widow for the
   8208 honor she was doing himself and his sons, but said that there was
   8209 another person whose modesty--
   8210 
   8211 And so forth and so on. He sprung his secret about Huck's share in the
   8212 adventure in the finest dramatic manner he was master of, but the
   8213 surprise it occasioned was largely counterfeit and not as clamorous and
   8214 effusive as it might have been under happier circumstances. However,
   8215 the widow made a pretty fair show of astonishment, and heaped so many
   8216 compliments and so much gratitude upon Huck that he almost forgot the
   8217 nearly intolerable discomfort of his new clothes in the entirely
   8218 intolerable discomfort of being set up as a target for everybody's gaze
   8219 and everybody's laudations.
   8220 
   8221 The widow said she meant to give Huck a home under her roof and have
   8222 him educated; and that when she could spare the money she would start
   8223 him in business in a modest way. Tom's chance was come. He said:
   8224 
   8225 "Huck don't need it. Huck's rich."
   8226 
   8227 Nothing but a heavy strain upon the good manners of the company kept
   8228 back the due and proper complimentary laugh at this pleasant joke. But
   8229 the silence was a little awkward. Tom broke it:
   8230 
   8231 "Huck's got money. Maybe you don't believe it, but he's got lots of
   8232 it. Oh, you needn't smile--I reckon I can show you. You just wait a
   8233 minute."
   8234 
   8235 Tom ran out of doors. The company looked at each other with a
   8236 perplexed interest--and inquiringly at Huck, who was tongue-tied.
   8237 
   8238 "Sid, what ails Tom?" said Aunt Polly. "He--well, there ain't ever any
   8239 making of that boy out. I never--"
   8240 
   8241 Tom entered, struggling with the weight of his sacks, and Aunt Polly
   8242 did not finish her sentence. Tom poured the mass of yellow coin upon
   8243 the table and said:
   8244 
   8245 "There--what did I tell you? Half of it's Huck's and half of it's mine!"
   8246 
   8247 The spectacle took the general breath away. All gazed, nobody spoke
   8248 for a moment. Then there was a unanimous call for an explanation. Tom
   8249 said he could furnish it, and he did. The tale was long, but brimful of
   8250 interest. There was scarcely an interruption from any one to break the
   8251 charm of its flow. When he had finished, Mr. Jones said:
   8252 
   8253 "I thought I had fixed up a little surprise for this occasion, but it
   8254 don't amount to anything now. This one makes it sing mighty small, I'm
   8255 willing to allow."
   8256 
   8257 The money was counted. The sum amounted to a little over twelve
   8258 thousand dollars. It was more than any one present had ever seen at one
   8259 time before, though several persons were there who were worth
   8260 considerably more than that in property.
   8261 
   8262 
   8263 
   8264 CHAPTER XXXV
   8265 
   8266 THE reader may rest satisfied that Tom's and Huck's windfall made a
   8267 mighty stir in the poor little village of St. Petersburg. So vast a
   8268 sum, all in actual cash, seemed next to incredible. It was talked
   8269 about, gloated over, glorified, until the reason of many of the
   8270 citizens tottered under the strain of the unhealthy excitement. Every
   8271 "haunted" house in St. Petersburg and the neighboring villages was
   8272 dissected, plank by plank, and its foundations dug up and ransacked for
   8273 hidden treasure--and not by boys, but men--pretty grave, unromantic
   8274 men, too, some of them. Wherever Tom and Huck appeared they were
   8275 courted, admired, stared at. The boys were not able to remember that
   8276 their remarks had possessed weight before; but now their sayings were
   8277 treasured and repeated; everything they did seemed somehow to be
   8278 regarded as remarkable; they had evidently lost the power of doing and
   8279 saying commonplace things; moreover, their past history was raked up
   8280 and discovered to bear marks of conspicuous originality. The village
   8281 paper published biographical sketches of the boys.
   8282 
   8283 The Widow Douglas put Huck's money out at six per cent., and Judge
   8284 Thatcher did the same with Tom's at Aunt Polly's request. Each lad had
   8285 an income, now, that was simply prodigious--a dollar for every week-day
   8286 in the year and half of the Sundays. It was just what the minister got
   8287 --no, it was what he was promised--he generally couldn't collect it. A
   8288 dollar and a quarter a week would board, lodge, and school a boy in
   8289 those old simple days--and clothe him and wash him, too, for that
   8290 matter.
   8291 
   8292 Judge Thatcher had conceived a great opinion of Tom. He said that no
   8293 commonplace boy would ever have got his daughter out of the cave. When
   8294 Becky told her father, in strict confidence, how Tom had taken her
   8295 whipping at school, the Judge was visibly moved; and when she pleaded
   8296 grace for the mighty lie which Tom had told in order to shift that
   8297 whipping from her shoulders to his own, the Judge said with a fine
   8298 outburst that it was a noble, a generous, a magnanimous lie--a lie that
   8299 was worthy to hold up its head and march down through history breast to
   8300 breast with George Washington's lauded Truth about the hatchet! Becky
   8301 thought her father had never looked so tall and so superb as when he
   8302 walked the floor and stamped his foot and said that. She went straight
   8303 off and told Tom about it.
   8304 
   8305 Judge Thatcher hoped to see Tom a great lawyer or a great soldier some
   8306 day. He said he meant to look to it that Tom should be admitted to the
   8307 National Military Academy and afterward trained in the best law school
   8308 in the country, in order that he might be ready for either career or
   8309 both.
   8310 
   8311 Huck Finn's wealth and the fact that he was now under the Widow
   8312 Douglas' protection introduced him into society--no, dragged him into
   8313 it, hurled him into it--and his sufferings were almost more than he
   8314 could bear. The widow's servants kept him clean and neat, combed and
   8315 brushed, and they bedded him nightly in unsympathetic sheets that had
   8316 not one little spot or stain which he could press to his heart and know
   8317 for a friend. He had to eat with a knife and fork; he had to use
   8318 napkin, cup, and plate; he had to learn his book, he had to go to
   8319 church; he had to talk so properly that speech was become insipid in
   8320 his mouth; whithersoever he turned, the bars and shackles of
   8321 civilization shut him in and bound him hand and foot.
   8322 
   8323 He bravely bore his miseries three weeks, and then one day turned up
   8324 missing. For forty-eight hours the widow hunted for him everywhere in
   8325 great distress. The public were profoundly concerned; they searched
   8326 high and low, they dragged the river for his body. Early the third
   8327 morning Tom Sawyer wisely went poking among some old empty hogsheads
   8328 down behind the abandoned slaughter-house, and in one of them he found
   8329 the refugee. Huck had slept there; he had just breakfasted upon some
   8330 stolen odds and ends of food, and was lying off, now, in comfort, with
   8331 his pipe. He was unkempt, uncombed, and clad in the same old ruin of
   8332 rags that had made him picturesque in the days when he was free and
   8333 happy. Tom routed him out, told him the trouble he had been causing,
   8334 and urged him to go home. Huck's face lost its tranquil content, and
   8335 took a melancholy cast. He said:
   8336 
   8337 "Don't talk about it, Tom. I've tried it, and it don't work; it don't
   8338 work, Tom. It ain't for me; I ain't used to it. The widder's good to
   8339 me, and friendly; but I can't stand them ways. She makes me get up just
   8340 at the same time every morning; she makes me wash, they comb me all to
   8341 thunder; she won't let me sleep in the woodshed; I got to wear them
   8342 blamed clothes that just smothers me, Tom; they don't seem to any air
   8343 git through 'em, somehow; and they're so rotten nice that I can't set
   8344 down, nor lay down, nor roll around anywher's; I hain't slid on a
   8345 cellar-door for--well, it 'pears to be years; I got to go to church and
   8346 sweat and sweat--I hate them ornery sermons! I can't ketch a fly in
   8347 there, I can't chaw. I got to wear shoes all Sunday. The widder eats by
   8348 a bell; she goes to bed by a bell; she gits up by a bell--everything's
   8349 so awful reg'lar a body can't stand it."
   8350 
   8351 "Well, everybody does that way, Huck."
   8352 
   8353 "Tom, it don't make no difference. I ain't everybody, and I can't
   8354 STAND it. It's awful to be tied up so. And grub comes too easy--I don't
   8355 take no interest in vittles, that way. I got to ask to go a-fishing; I
   8356 got to ask to go in a-swimming--dern'd if I hain't got to ask to do
   8357 everything. Well, I'd got to talk so nice it wasn't no comfort--I'd got
   8358 to go up in the attic and rip out awhile, every day, to git a taste in
   8359 my mouth, or I'd a died, Tom. The widder wouldn't let me smoke; she
   8360 wouldn't let me yell, she wouldn't let me gape, nor stretch, nor
   8361 scratch, before folks--" [Then with a spasm of special irritation and
   8362 injury]--"And dad fetch it, she prayed all the time! I never see such a
   8363 woman! I HAD to shove, Tom--I just had to. And besides, that school's
   8364 going to open, and I'd a had to go to it--well, I wouldn't stand THAT,
   8365 Tom. Looky here, Tom, being rich ain't what it's cracked up to be. It's
   8366 just worry and worry, and sweat and sweat, and a-wishing you was dead
   8367 all the time. Now these clothes suits me, and this bar'l suits me, and
   8368 I ain't ever going to shake 'em any more. Tom, I wouldn't ever got into
   8369 all this trouble if it hadn't 'a' ben for that money; now you just take
   8370 my sheer of it along with your'n, and gimme a ten-center sometimes--not
   8371 many times, becuz I don't give a dern for a thing 'thout it's tollable
   8372 hard to git--and you go and beg off for me with the widder."
   8373 
   8374 "Oh, Huck, you know I can't do that. 'Tain't fair; and besides if
   8375 you'll try this thing just a while longer you'll come to like it."
   8376 
   8377 "Like it! Yes--the way I'd like a hot stove if I was to set on it long
   8378 enough. No, Tom, I won't be rich, and I won't live in them cussed
   8379 smothery houses. I like the woods, and the river, and hogsheads, and
   8380 I'll stick to 'em, too. Blame it all! just as we'd got guns, and a
   8381 cave, and all just fixed to rob, here this dern foolishness has got to
   8382 come up and spile it all!"
   8383 
   8384 Tom saw his opportunity--
   8385 
   8386 "Lookyhere, Huck, being rich ain't going to keep me back from turning
   8387 robber."
   8388 
   8389 "No! Oh, good-licks; are you in real dead-wood earnest, Tom?"
   8390 
   8391 "Just as dead earnest as I'm sitting here. But Huck, we can't let you
   8392 into the gang if you ain't respectable, you know."
   8393 
   8394 Huck's joy was quenched.
   8395 
   8396 "Can't let me in, Tom? Didn't you let me go for a pirate?"
   8397 
   8398 "Yes, but that's different. A robber is more high-toned than what a
   8399 pirate is--as a general thing. In most countries they're awful high up
   8400 in the nobility--dukes and such."
   8401 
   8402 "Now, Tom, hain't you always ben friendly to me? You wouldn't shet me
   8403 out, would you, Tom? You wouldn't do that, now, WOULD you, Tom?"
   8404 
   8405 "Huck, I wouldn't want to, and I DON'T want to--but what would people
   8406 say? Why, they'd say, 'Mph! Tom Sawyer's Gang! pretty low characters in
   8407 it!' They'd mean you, Huck. You wouldn't like that, and I wouldn't."
   8408 
   8409 Huck was silent for some time, engaged in a mental struggle. Finally
   8410 he said:
   8411 
   8412 "Well, I'll go back to the widder for a month and tackle it and see if
   8413 I can come to stand it, if you'll let me b'long to the gang, Tom."
   8414 
   8415 "All right, Huck, it's a whiz! Come along, old chap, and I'll ask the
   8416 widow to let up on you a little, Huck."
   8417 
   8418 "Will you, Tom--now will you? That's good. If she'll let up on some of
   8419 the roughest things, I'll smoke private and cuss private, and crowd
   8420 through or bust. When you going to start the gang and turn robbers?"
   8421 
   8422 "Oh, right off. We'll get the boys together and have the initiation
   8423 to-night, maybe."
   8424 
   8425 "Have the which?"
   8426 
   8427 "Have the initiation."
   8428 
   8429 "What's that?"
   8430 
   8431 "It's to swear to stand by one another, and never tell the gang's
   8432 secrets, even if you're chopped all to flinders, and kill anybody and
   8433 all his family that hurts one of the gang."
   8434 
   8435 "That's gay--that's mighty gay, Tom, I tell you."
   8436 
   8437 "Well, I bet it is. And all that swearing's got to be done at
   8438 midnight, in the lonesomest, awfulest place you can find--a ha'nted
   8439 house is the best, but they're all ripped up now."
   8440 
   8441 "Well, midnight's good, anyway, Tom."
   8442 
   8443 "Yes, so it is. And you've got to swear on a coffin, and sign it with
   8444 blood."
   8445 
   8446 "Now, that's something LIKE! Why, it's a million times bullier than
   8447 pirating. I'll stick to the widder till I rot, Tom; and if I git to be
   8448 a reg'lar ripper of a robber, and everybody talking 'bout it, I reckon
   8449 she'll be proud she snaked me in out of the wet."
   8450 
   8451 
   8452 
   8453 CONCLUSION
   8454 
   8455 SO endeth this chronicle. It being strictly a history of a BOY, it
   8456 must stop here; the story could not go much further without becoming
   8457 the history of a MAN. When one writes a novel about grown people, he
   8458 knows exactly where to stop--that is, with a marriage; but when he
   8459 writes of juveniles, he must stop where he best can.
   8460 
   8461 Most of the characters that perform in this book still live, and are
   8462 prosperous and happy. Some day it may seem worth while to take up the
   8463 story of the younger ones again and see what sort of men and women they
   8464 turned out to be; therefore it will be wisest not to reveal any of that
   8465 part of their lives at present.
   8466